7521 lines
390 KiB
Plaintext
7521 lines
390 KiB
Plaintext
1906
|
|
|
|
WHITE FANG
|
|
|
|
by Jack London
|
|
|
|
PART ONE.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER ONE.
|
|
|
|
The Trail of the Meat.
|
|
|
|
DARK SPRUCE FOREST frowned on either side the frozen waterway. The
|
|
trees had been stripped by a recent wind of their white covering of
|
|
the frost, and they seemed to lean toward each other, black and
|
|
ominous, in the fading light. A vast silence reigned over the land.
|
|
The land itself was a desolation, lifeless, without movement, so
|
|
lone and cold that the spirit of it was not even that of sadness.
|
|
There was a hint in it of laughter, but of a laughter more terrible
|
|
than any sadness- a laughter that was mirthless as the smile of the
|
|
Sphinx, a laughter cold as the frost and partaking of the grimness
|
|
of infallibility. It was the masterful and incommunicable wisdom of
|
|
eternity laughing at the futility of life and the effort of life. It
|
|
was the Wild, the savage, frozen-hearted Northland Wild.
|
|
|
|
But there was life, abroad in the land and defiant. Down the
|
|
frozen waterway toiled a string of wolfish dogs. Their bristly fur was
|
|
rimed with frost. Their breath froze in the air as it left their
|
|
mouths, spouting forth in spumes of vapor that settled upon the hair
|
|
of their bodies and formed into crystals of frost. Leather harness was
|
|
on the dogs, and leather traces attached them to a sled which
|
|
dragged along behind. The sled was without runners. It was made of
|
|
stout birch-bark, and its full surface rested on the snow. The front
|
|
end of the sled was turned up, like a scroll in order to force down
|
|
and under the bore of soft snow that surged like a wave before it.
|
|
On the sled, securely lashed, was a long and narrow oblong box.
|
|
There were other things on the sled-blankets, an axe, and a coffee-pot
|
|
and frying-pan; but prominent, occupying most of the space, was the
|
|
long and narrow oblong box.
|
|
|
|
In advance of the dogs, on wide snowshoes, toiled a man. At the rear
|
|
of the sled toiled a second man. On the sled, in the box, lay a
|
|
third man whose toil was over- a man whom the Wild had conquered and
|
|
beaten down until he would never move nor struggle again. It is not
|
|
the way of the Wild to like movement. Life is an offense to it, for
|
|
life is movement; and the Wild aims always to destroy movement. It
|
|
freezes the water to prevent it running to the sea; it drives the
|
|
sap out of the trees till they are frozen to their mighty hearts;
|
|
and most ferociously and terribly of all does the Wild harry and crush
|
|
into submission man- man, who is the most restless of life, ever in
|
|
revolt against the dictum that all movement must in the end come to
|
|
the cessation of movement.
|
|
|
|
But at front and rear, unawed and indomitable, toiled the two men
|
|
who were not yet dead. Their bodies were covered with fur and
|
|
soft-tanned leather. Eyelashes and cheeks and lips were so coated with
|
|
the crystals from their frozen breath that their faces were not
|
|
discernible. This gave them the seeming of ghostly masques,
|
|
undertakers in a spectral world at the funeral of some ghost. But
|
|
under it all they were men, penetrating the land of desolation and
|
|
mockery and silence, puny adventurers bent on colossal adventure,
|
|
pitting themselves against the might of a world as remote and alien
|
|
and pulseless as the abysses of space.
|
|
|
|
They traveled on without speech, saving their breath for the work of
|
|
their bodies. On every side was the silence, pressing upon them with a
|
|
tangible presence. It affected their minds as the many atmospheres
|
|
of deep water affect the body of the diver. It crushed them with the
|
|
weight of unending vastness and unalterable decree. It crushed them
|
|
into the remotest recesses of their own minds, pressing out of them,
|
|
like juices from the grape, all the false ardors and exaltations and
|
|
undue self-values of the human soul, until they perceived themselves
|
|
finite and small, specks and motes, moving with weak cunning and
|
|
little wisdom amidst the play and interplay of the great blind
|
|
elements and forces.
|
|
|
|
An hour went by, and a second hour. The pale light of the short
|
|
sunless day was beginning to fade, when a faint far cry arose on the
|
|
still air. It soared upward with a swift rush, till it reached its
|
|
topmost note, where it persisted, palpitant and tense, and then slowly
|
|
died away. It might have been a lost soul wailing, had it not been
|
|
invested with a certain sad fierceness and hungry eagerness. The front
|
|
man turned his head until his eyes met the eyes of the man behind. And
|
|
then, across the narrow oblong box, each nodded to the other.
|
|
|
|
A second cry arose, piercing the silence with needlelike shrillness.
|
|
Both men located the sound. It was to the rear, somewhere in the
|
|
snow expanse they had just traversed. A third and answering cry arose,
|
|
also to the rear and to the left of the second cry.
|
|
|
|
'They're after us, Bill,' said the man at the front.
|
|
|
|
His voice sounded hoarse and unreal, and he had spoken with apparent
|
|
effort.
|
|
|
|
'Meat is scarce,' answered his comrade. 'I ain't seen a rabbit
|
|
sign for days.'
|
|
|
|
Thereafter they spoke no more, though their ears were keen for the
|
|
hunting-cries that continued to rise behind them.
|
|
|
|
At the fall of darkness they swung the dogs into a cluster of spruce
|
|
trees on the edge of the waterway and made a camp. The coffin, at
|
|
the side of the fire, served for seat and table. The wolf-dogs,
|
|
clustered on the far side of the fire, snarled and bickered among
|
|
themselves, but evinced no inclination to stray off into the darkness.
|
|
|
|
'Seems to me, Henry, they're stayin' remarkable close to camp,' Bill
|
|
commented.
|
|
|
|
Henry, squatting over the fire and settling the pot of coffee with a
|
|
piece of ice, nodded. Nor did he speak till he had taken his seat on
|
|
the coffin and begun to eat.
|
|
|
|
'They know where their hides is safe,' he said. 'They'd sooner eat
|
|
grub than be grub. They're pretty wise, them dogs.'
|
|
|
|
Bill shook his head. 'Oh, I don't know.'
|
|
|
|
His comrade looked at him curiously. 'First time I ever heard you
|
|
say anythin' about their not bein' wise.'
|
|
|
|
'Henry,' said the other, munching with deliberation the beans he was
|
|
eating, 'did you happen to notice the way them dogs kicked up when I
|
|
was a-feedin' 'em?'
|
|
|
|
'They did cut up more'n usual,' Henry acknowledged.
|
|
|
|
'How many dogs've we got, Henry?'
|
|
|
|
'Six.'
|
|
|
|
'Well, Henry...' Bill stopped for a moment, in order that his
|
|
words might gain greater significance. 'As I was sayin', Henry,
|
|
we've got six dogs. I took six fish out of the bag. I gave one fish to
|
|
each dog, an', Henry, I was one fish short.'
|
|
|
|
'You counted wrong.'
|
|
|
|
'We've got six dogs,' the other reiterated dispassionately. 'I
|
|
took out six fish. One Ear didn't get no fish. I come back to the
|
|
bag afterward an' got 'm his fish.'
|
|
|
|
'We've only got six dogs,' Henry said.
|
|
|
|
'Henry,' Bill went on, 'I won't say they was all dogs, but there was
|
|
seven of 'm that got fish.'
|
|
|
|
Henry stopped eating to glance across the fire and count the dogs.
|
|
|
|
'There's only six now,' he said.
|
|
|
|
'I saw the other one run off across the snow,' Bill announced with
|
|
cool positiveness. 'I saw seven.'
|
|
|
|
His comrade looked at him commiseratingly, and said, 'I'll be
|
|
almightly glad when this trip's over.'
|
|
|
|
'What d'ye mean by that?' Bill demanded.
|
|
|
|
'I mean that this load of ourn is gettin' on your nerves, an' that
|
|
you're beginnin' to see things.'
|
|
|
|
'I thought of that,' Bill answered gravely. 'An' so, when I saw it
|
|
run off across the snow, I looked in the snow an' saw its tracks. Then
|
|
I counted the dogs an' there was still six of 'em. The tracks is there
|
|
in the snow now. D'ye want to look at 'em? I'll show 'm to you.'
|
|
|
|
Henry did not reply, but munched on in silence, until, the meal
|
|
finished, he topped it with a final cup of coffee. He wiped his
|
|
mouth with the back of his hand and said:
|
|
|
|
'Then you're thinkin' as it was-'
|
|
|
|
A long wailing cry, fiercely sad, from somewhere in the darkness,
|
|
had interrupted him. He stopped to listen to it, then he finished
|
|
his sentence with a wave of his hand toward the sound of the cry, '-
|
|
one of them?'
|
|
|
|
Bill nodded. 'I'd a blame sight sooner think that than anything
|
|
else. You noticed yourself the row the dogs made.'
|
|
|
|
Cry after cry, and answering cries, were turning the silence into
|
|
a bedlam. From every side the cries arose, and the dogs betrayed their
|
|
fear by huddling together and so close to the fire that their hair was
|
|
scorched by the heat. Bill threw on more wood, before lighting his
|
|
pipe.
|
|
|
|
'I'm thinkin' you're down in the mouth some,' Henry said.
|
|
|
|
'Henry...' He sucked meditatively at his pipe for some time before
|
|
he went on. 'Henry, I was a-thinkin' what a blame sight luckier he
|
|
is than you an' me'll ever be.'
|
|
|
|
He indicated the third person by a downward thrust of the thumb to
|
|
the box on which they sat.
|
|
|
|
'You an' me Henry, when we die, we'll be lucky if we get enough
|
|
stones over our carcasses to keep the dogs off of us.'
|
|
|
|
'But we ain't got people an' money an' all the rest, like him,'
|
|
Henry rejoined. 'Long-distance funerals is somethin' you an' me
|
|
can't exactly afford.'
|
|
|
|
'What gets me, Henry, is what a chap like this, that's a lord or
|
|
something in his own country, and that's never had to bother about
|
|
grub nor blankets, why he comes a-buttin' round the God-forsaken
|
|
ends of the earth- that's what I can't exactly see.'
|
|
|
|
'He might have lived to a ripe old age if he'd stayed to home,'
|
|
Henry agreed.
|
|
|
|
Bill opened his mouth to speak, but changed his mind. Instead, he
|
|
pointed toward the wall of darkness that pressed about them from every
|
|
side. There was no suggestion of form in the utter blackness; only
|
|
could be seen a pair of eyes gleaming like live coals. Henry indicated
|
|
with his head a second pair, and a third. Now and again a pair of eyes
|
|
moved, or disappeared to appear again a moment later.
|
|
|
|
The unrest of the dogs had been increasing, and they stampeded, in a
|
|
surge of sudden fear, to the near side of the fire, cringing and
|
|
crawling about the legs of the men. In the scramble one of the dogs
|
|
had been overturned on the edge of the fire, and it had yelped with
|
|
pain and fright as the smell of its singed coat possessed the air. The
|
|
commotion caused the circle of eyes to shift restlessly for a moment
|
|
and even to withdraw a bit, but it settled down again as the dogs
|
|
became quiet.
|
|
|
|
'Henry, it's a blame misfortune to be out of ammunition.'
|
|
|
|
Bill had finished his pipe, and was helping his companion spread the
|
|
bed of fur and blanket upon the spruce boughs which he had laid over
|
|
the snow before supper. Henry grunted, and began unlacing his
|
|
moccasins.
|
|
|
|
'How many cartridges did you say you had left?' he asked.
|
|
|
|
'Three,' came the answer. 'An' I wisht 'twas three hundred. Then I'd
|
|
show 'em what for, damn 'em!'
|
|
|
|
He shook his fist angrily at the gleaming eyes, and began securely
|
|
to prop his moccasins before the fire.
|
|
|
|
'An' I wisht this cold snap'd break,' he went on. 'It's been fifty
|
|
below for two weeks now. An' I wisht I'd never started on this trip,
|
|
Henry. I don't like the looks of it. I don't feel right, somehow.
|
|
An' while I'm wishin', I wisht the trip was over an' done with, an'
|
|
you an' me a-sittin' by the fire in Fort McGurry just about now an'
|
|
playin' cribbage- that's what I wisht.'
|
|
|
|
Henry grunted and crawled into bed. As he dozed off he was aroused
|
|
by his comrade's voice.
|
|
|
|
'Say, Henry, that other one that come in an' got a fish- why
|
|
didn't the dogs pitch into it? That's what's botherin' me.'
|
|
|
|
'You're botherin' too much, Bill,' came the sleepy response. 'You
|
|
was never like this before. You jes' shut up now, an' go to sleep, an'
|
|
you'll be all hunky-dory in the mornin'. Your stomach's sour, that's
|
|
what's botherin' you.'
|
|
|
|
The men slept, breathing heavily, side by side, under the one
|
|
covering. The fire died down, and the gleaming eyes drew closer the
|
|
circle they had flung about the camp. The dogs clustered together in
|
|
fear, now and again snarling menacingly as a pair of eyes drew
|
|
close. Once their uproar became so loud that Bill woke up. He got
|
|
out of bed carefully, so as not to disturb the sleep of his comrade,
|
|
and threw more wood on the fire. As it began to flame up, the circle
|
|
of eyes drew farther back. He glanced casually at the huddling dogs.
|
|
He rubbed his eyes and looked at them more sharply. Then he crawled
|
|
back into the blankets.
|
|
|
|
'Henry,' he said. 'Oh, Henry.'
|
|
|
|
Henry groaned as he passed from sleep to waking, and demanded,
|
|
'What's wrong now?'
|
|
|
|
'Nothin',' came the answer; 'only there's seven of 'em again. I just
|
|
counted.'
|
|
|
|
Henry acknowledged receipt of the information with a grunt that slid
|
|
into a snore as he drifted back into sleep.
|
|
|
|
In the morning it was Henry who awoke first and routed his companion
|
|
out of bed. Daylight was yet three hours away, though it was already
|
|
six o'clock; and in the darkness Henry went about preparing breakfast,
|
|
while Bill rolled the blankets and made the sled ready for lashing.
|
|
|
|
'Say, Henry,' he asked suddenly, 'how many dogs did you say we had?'
|
|
|
|
'Six.'
|
|
|
|
'Wrong,' Bill proclaimed triumphantly.
|
|
|
|
'Seven again?' Henry queried.
|
|
|
|
'No, five; one's gone.'
|
|
|
|
'The hell!' Henry cried in wrath, leaving the cooking to come and
|
|
count the dogs.
|
|
|
|
'You're right, Bill,' he concluded. 'Fatty's gone.'
|
|
|
|
'An' he went like greased lightnin' once he got started. Couldn't
|
|
've seen 'm for smoke.'
|
|
|
|
'No chance at all,' Henry concluded. 'They jes' swallowed 'm
|
|
alive. I bet he was yelpin' as he went down their throats, damn 'em!'
|
|
|
|
'He always was a fool dog,' said Bill.
|
|
|
|
'But no fool dog ought to be fool enough to go off an' commit
|
|
suicide that way.' He looked over the remainder of the team with a
|
|
speculative eye that summed up instantly the salient traits of each
|
|
animal. 'I bet none of the others would do it.'
|
|
|
|
'Couldn't drive 'em away from the fire with a club,' Bill agreed. 'I
|
|
always did think there was somethin' wrong with Fatty, anyway.'
|
|
|
|
And this was the epitaph of a dead dog on the Northland trail-
|
|
less scant than the epitaph of many another dog, of many a man.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER TWO.
|
|
|
|
The She-wolf.
|
|
|
|
BREAKFAST EATEN AND the slim camp-outfit lashed to the sled, the men
|
|
turned their backs on the cheery fire and launched out into the
|
|
darkness. At once began to rise the cries that were fiercely sad-
|
|
cries that called through the darkness and cold to one another and
|
|
answered back. Conversation ceased. Daylight came at nine o'clock.
|
|
At midday the sky to the south warmed to a rose-color, and marked
|
|
where the bulge of the earth intervened between the meridian sun and
|
|
the northern world. But the rose-color swiftly faded. The gray light
|
|
of day that remained lasted until three o'clock, when it, too,
|
|
faded, and the pall of the Arctic night descended upon the lone and
|
|
silent land.
|
|
|
|
As darkness came on, the hunting-cries to right and left and rear
|
|
drew closer- so close that more than once they sent surges of fear
|
|
through the toiling dogs, throwing them into short-lived panics.
|
|
|
|
At the conclusion of one such panic, when he and Henry had got the
|
|
dogs back in the traces, Bill said:
|
|
|
|
'I wisht they'd strike game somewheres, an' go away an' leave us
|
|
alone.'
|
|
|
|
'They do get on the nerves horrible,' Henry sympathized.
|
|
|
|
They spoke no more until camp was made.
|
|
|
|
Henry was bending over and adding ice to the bubbling pot of beans
|
|
when he was startled by the sound of a blow, and exclamation from
|
|
Bill, and a sharp snarling cry of pain from among the dogs. He
|
|
straightened up in time to see a dim form disappearing across the snow
|
|
into the shelter of the dark. Then he saw Bill, standing amid the
|
|
dogs, half triumphant, half crestfallen, in one hand a stout club,
|
|
in the other the tail and part of the body of a sun-cured salmon.
|
|
|
|
'It got half of it,' he announced; 'but I got a whack at it jes' the
|
|
same. D'ye hear it squeal?'
|
|
|
|
'What'd it look like?' Henry asked.
|
|
|
|
'Couldn't see. But it had four legs an' a mouth an' hair an'
|
|
looked like any dog.'
|
|
|
|
'Must be a tame wolf, I reckon.'
|
|
|
|
'It's damned tame, whatever it is, comin' in here at feedin' time
|
|
an' gettin' its whack of fish.'
|
|
|
|
That night, when supper was finished and they sat on the oblong
|
|
box and pulled at their pipes, the circle of gleaming eyes drew in
|
|
even closer than before.
|
|
|
|
'I wisht they'd spring up a bunch of moose or somethin', an' go away
|
|
an' leave us alone,' Bill said.
|
|
|
|
Henry grunted with an intonation that was not all sympathy and for a
|
|
quarter of an hour they sat on in silence, Henry staring at the
|
|
fire, and Bill at the circle of eyes that burned in the darkness
|
|
just beyond the firelight.
|
|
|
|
'I wisht we were pullin' into McGurry right now,' he began again.
|
|
|
|
'Shut up your wishin' an' your croakin', Henry burst out angrily.
|
|
'Your stomach's sour. That's what's ailin' you. Swallow a spoonful
|
|
of sody, an' you'll sweeten up wonderful an' be more pleasant
|
|
company.'
|
|
|
|
In the morning, Henry was aroused by fervid blasphemy that proceeded
|
|
from the mouth of Bill. Henry propped himself up on an elbow and
|
|
looked to see his comrade standing among the dogs beside the
|
|
replenished fire, his arms raised in objurgation, his face distorted
|
|
with passion.
|
|
|
|
'Hello!' Henry called. 'What's up now?'
|
|
|
|
'Frog's gone,' came the answer.
|
|
|
|
'No.'
|
|
|
|
'I tell you yes.'
|
|
|
|
Henry leaped out of the blankets and to the dogs. He counted them
|
|
with care, and then joined his partner in cursing the powers of the
|
|
Wild that had robbed them of another dog.
|
|
|
|
'Frog was the strongest of the bunch,' Bill pronounced finally.
|
|
|
|
'An' he was no fool dog neither,' Henry added.
|
|
|
|
And so was recorded the second epitaph in two days.
|
|
|
|
A gloomy breakfast was eaten, and the four remaining dogs were
|
|
harnessed to the sled. The day was a repetition of the days that had
|
|
gone before. The men toiled without speech across the face of the
|
|
frozen world. The silence was unbroken save by the cries of their
|
|
pursuers, that, unseen, hung upon their rear. With the coming of night
|
|
in the mid-afternoon, the cries sounded closer as the pursuers drew in
|
|
according to their custom; and the dogs grew excited and frightened,
|
|
and were guilty of panics that tangled the traces and further
|
|
depressed the two men.
|
|
|
|
'There, that'll fix you fool critters,' Bill said with
|
|
satisfaction that night, standing erect at completion of his task.
|
|
|
|
Henry left his cooking to come and see. Not only had his partner
|
|
tied the dogs up, but he had tied them, after the Indian fashion, with
|
|
sticks. About the neck of each dog he had fastened the leather
|
|
thong. To this, and so close to the neck that the dog could not get
|
|
his teeth to it, he had tied a stout stick four or five feet in
|
|
length. The other end of the stick, in turn, was made fast to a
|
|
stake in the ground by means of a leather thong. The dog was unable to
|
|
gnaw through the leather at his own end of the stick. The stick
|
|
prevented him from getting at the leather that fastened the other end.
|
|
|
|
Henry nodded his head approvingly.
|
|
|
|
'It's the only contraption that'll ever hold One Ear,' he said.
|
|
'He can gnaw through leather as clean as a knife an' jes' about half
|
|
as quick. They all 'll be here in the mornin' hunky-dory.'
|
|
|
|
'You jes' bet they will,' Bill affirmed. 'If one of 'em turns up
|
|
missin', I'll go without my coffee.'
|
|
|
|
'They jes' know we ain't loaded to kill,' Henry remarked at bedtime,
|
|
indicating the gleaming circle that hemmed them in. 'If we could put a
|
|
couple of shot into 'em, they'd be more respectful. They come closer
|
|
every night. Get the firelight out of your eyes an' look hard-
|
|
there! Did you see that one?'
|
|
|
|
For some time the two men amused themselves with watching the
|
|
movement of vague forms on the edge of the firelight. By looking
|
|
closely and steadily at where a pair of eyes burned in the darkness,
|
|
the form of the animal would slowly take shape. They could even see
|
|
these forms move at times.
|
|
|
|
A sound among the dogs attracted the men's attention. One Ear was
|
|
uttering quick, eager whines, lunging at the length of his stick
|
|
toward the darkness, and desisting now and again in order to make
|
|
frantic attacks on the stick with his teeth.
|
|
|
|
'Look at that, Bill,' Henry whispered.
|
|
|
|
Full into the firelight, with a stealthy, sidelong movement,
|
|
glided a doglike animal. It moved with commingled mistrust and daring,
|
|
cautiously observing the men, its attention fixed on the dogs. One Ear
|
|
strained the full length of the stick toward the intruder and whined
|
|
with eagerness.
|
|
|
|
'That fool One Ear don't seem scairt much,' Bill said in a low tone.
|
|
|
|
'It's a she-wolf,' Henry whispered back, 'an' that accounts for
|
|
Fatty an' Frog. She's the decoy for the pack. She draws out the dog
|
|
an' then all the rest pitches in an' eats 'm up.'
|
|
|
|
The fire crackled. A log fell apart with a loud spluttering noise.
|
|
At the sound of it the strange animal leaped back into the darkness.
|
|
|
|
'Henry, I'm a-thinkin',' Bill announced.
|
|
|
|
'Thinkin' what?'
|
|
|
|
'I'm a-thinkin' that was the one I lambasted with the club.'
|
|
|
|
'Ain't the slightest doubt in the world,' was Henry's response.
|
|
|
|
'An' right here I want to remark,' Bill went on, 'that that animal's
|
|
familyarity with campfires is suspicious an' immoral.'
|
|
|
|
'It knows for certain more'n a self-respectin' wolf ought to
|
|
know,' Henry agreed. 'A wolf that knows enough to come in with the
|
|
dogs at feedin' time has had experiences.'
|
|
|
|
'Ol' Villan had a dog once that run away with the wolves,' Bill
|
|
cogitated aloud. 'I ought to know. I shot it out of the pack in a
|
|
moose pasture over on Little Stick. An' Ol' Villan cried like a
|
|
baby. Hadn't seen it for three years, he said. Ben with the wolves all
|
|
that time.'
|
|
|
|
'I reckon you've called the turn, Bill. That wolf's a dog, an'
|
|
it's eaten fish many's the time from the hand of man.'
|
|
|
|
'An' if I get a chance at it, that wolf that's a dog'll be jes'
|
|
meat,' Bill declared. 'We can't afford to lose no more animals.'
|
|
|
|
'But you've only got three cartridges,' Henry objected.
|
|
|
|
'I'll wait for a dead sure shot,' was the reply.
|
|
|
|
In the morning Henry renewed the fire and cooked breakfast to the
|
|
accompaniment of his partner's snoring.
|
|
|
|
'You was sleepin' jes' too comfortable for anythin',' Henry told
|
|
him, as he routed him out for breakfast. 'I hadn't the heart to
|
|
rouse you.'
|
|
|
|
Bill began to eat sleepily. He noticed that his cup was empty and
|
|
started to reach for the pot. But the pot was beyond arm's length
|
|
and beside Henry.
|
|
|
|
'Say, Henry,' he chided gently, 'ain't you forgot somethin'?'
|
|
|
|
Henry looked about with great carefulness and shook his head. Bill
|
|
held up the empty cup.
|
|
|
|
'You don't get no coffee,' Henry announced.
|
|
|
|
'Ain't run out?' Bill asked anxiously.
|
|
|
|
'Nope.'
|
|
|
|
'Ain't thinkin' it'll hurt my digestion?'
|
|
|
|
'Nope.'
|
|
|
|
A flush of angry blood pervaded Bill's face.
|
|
|
|
'Then it's jes' warm an' anxious I am to be hearin' you explain
|
|
yourself,' he said.
|
|
|
|
'Spanker's gone,' Henry answered.
|
|
|
|
Without haste, with the air of one resigned to misfortune, Bill
|
|
turned his head, and from where he sat counted the dogs.
|
|
|
|
'How'd it happen?' he asked apathetically.
|
|
|
|
Henry shrugged his shoulders. 'Don't know. Unless One Ear gnawed
|
|
'm loose. He couldn't a-done it himself, that's sure.'
|
|
|
|
'The darned cuss.' Bill spoke gravely and slowly, with no hint of
|
|
the anger that was raging within. 'Jes' because he couldn't chew
|
|
himself loose, he chews Spanker loose.'
|
|
|
|
'Well, Spanker's troubles is over, anyway; I guess he's digested
|
|
by this time an' cavortin' over the landscape in the bellies of twenty
|
|
different wolves,' was Henry's epitaph on this, the latest lost dog.
|
|
'Have some coffee, Bill.'
|
|
|
|
But Bill shook his head.
|
|
|
|
'Go on,' Henry pleaded, elevating the pot.
|
|
|
|
Bill shoved his cup aside. 'I'll be ding-dong-danged if I do. I said
|
|
I wouldn't if any dog turned up missin', an' I won't.'
|
|
|
|
'It's darn good coffee,' Henry said enticingly.
|
|
|
|
But Bill was stubborn, and he ate a dry breakfast, washed down
|
|
with mumbled curses at One Ear for the trick he had played.
|
|
|
|
'I'll tie 'em up out of reach of each other tonight,' Bill said,
|
|
as they took the trail.
|
|
|
|
They had traveled little more than a hundred yards, when Henry,
|
|
who was in front, bent down and picked up something with which his
|
|
snowshoe had collided. It was dark, and he could not see it, but he
|
|
recognized it by the touch. He flung it back, so that it struck the
|
|
sled and bounced along until it fetched up on Bill's snowshoes.
|
|
|
|
'Mebbee you'll need that in your business,' Henry said.
|
|
|
|
Bill uttered an exclamation. It was all that was left of Spanker-
|
|
the stick with which he had been tied.
|
|
|
|
'They ate 'm hide an' all,' Bill announced. 'The stick's as clean as
|
|
a whistle. They've ate the leather offen both ends. They're damn
|
|
hungry, Henry, an' they'll have you an' me guessin' before his
|
|
trip's over.'
|
|
|
|
Henry laughed defiantly. 'I ain't been trailed this way by wolves
|
|
before, but I've gone through a whole lot worse an' kept my health.
|
|
Takes more'n a handful of them pesky critters to do for yours truly,
|
|
Bill, my son.'
|
|
|
|
'I don't know, I don't know,' Bill muttered ominously.
|
|
|
|
'Well, you'll know all right when we pull into McGurry.'
|
|
|
|
'I ain't feelin' special enthusiastic,' Bill persisted.
|
|
|
|
'You're off color, that's what's the matter with you,' Henry
|
|
dogmatized. 'What you need is quinine, an' I'm goin' to dose you up
|
|
stiff as soon as we make McGurry.'
|
|
|
|
Bill grunted his disagreement with the diagnosis, and lapsed into
|
|
silence. The day was like all the days. Light came at nine o'clock. At
|
|
twelve o'clock the southern horizon was warmed by the unseen sun;
|
|
and then began the cold gray of afternoon that would merge, three
|
|
hours later, into night.
|
|
|
|
It was just after the sun's futile effort to appear that Bill
|
|
slipped the rifle from under the sled-lashings and said:
|
|
|
|
'You keep right on, Henry, I'm goin' to see what I can see.'
|
|
|
|
'You'd better stick by the sled,' his partner protested. 'You've
|
|
only got three cartridges, an' there's no tellin' what might happen.'
|
|
|
|
'Who's croakin' now?' Bill demanded triumphantly.
|
|
|
|
Henry made no reply, and plodded on alone, though often he cast
|
|
anxious glances back into the gray solitude where his partner had
|
|
disappeared. An hour later, taking advantage of the cut-offs around
|
|
which the sled had to go, Bill arrived.
|
|
|
|
'They're scattered an' rangin' along wide,' he said; 'keepin' up
|
|
with us an' lookin' for game at the same time. You see, they're sure
|
|
of us, only they know they've got to wait to get us. In the meantime
|
|
they're willin' to pick up anythin' eatable that comes handy.'
|
|
|
|
'You mean they think they're sure of us,' Henry objected pointedly.
|
|
|
|
But Bill ignored him. 'I seen some of them. They're pretty thin.
|
|
They ain't had a bit in weeks, I reckon, outside of Fatty an' Frog an'
|
|
Spanker; an' there's so many of 'em that that didn't go far. They're
|
|
remarkable thin. Their ribs is like washboards, an' their stomachs
|
|
is right up against their backbones. They're pretty desperate, I can
|
|
tell you. They'll be goin' mad, yet, an' then watch out.'
|
|
|
|
A few minutes later, Henry, who was now traveling behind the sled,
|
|
emitted a low, warning whistle. Bill turned and looked, then quietly
|
|
stopped the dogs. To the rear, from around the last bend and plainly
|
|
into view, on the very trail they had just covered, trotted a furry,
|
|
slinking form. Its nose was to the trail, and it trotted with a
|
|
peculiar, sliding, effortless gait. When they halted, it halted,
|
|
throwing up its head and regarding them steadily with nostrils that
|
|
twitched as it caught and studied the scent of them.
|
|
|
|
'It's the she-wolf,' Bill whispered.
|
|
|
|
The dogs had lain down in the snow, and he walked past them to
|
|
join his partner at the sled. Together they watched the strange animal
|
|
that had pursued them for days and that had already accomplished the
|
|
destruction of half their dog-team.
|
|
|
|
After a searching scrutiny, the animal trotted forward a few
|
|
steps. This it repeated several times, till it was a short hundred
|
|
yards away. It paused, head up, close by a clump of spruce trees,
|
|
and with sight and scent studied the outfit of the watching men. It
|
|
looked at them in a strangely wistful way, after the manner of a
|
|
dog; but in its wistfulness there was none of the dog affection. It
|
|
was a wistfulness bred of hunger, as cruel as its own fangs, as
|
|
merciless as the frost itself.
|
|
|
|
It was large for a wolf, its gaunt frame advertising the lines of an
|
|
animal that was among the largest of its kind.
|
|
|
|
'Stands pretty close to two feet an' a half at the shoulders,' Henry
|
|
commented. 'An' I'll bet it ain't far from five feet long.'
|
|
|
|
'Kind of strange color for a wolf,' was Bill's criticism. 'I never
|
|
seen a red wolf before. Looks almost cinnamon to me.'
|
|
|
|
The animal was certainly not cinnamon-colored. Its coat was the true
|
|
wolf-coat. The dominant color was gray, and yet there was to it a
|
|
faint reddish hue- a hue that was baffling, that appeared and
|
|
disappeared, that was more like an illusion of the vision, now gray,
|
|
distinctly gray, and again giving hints and glints of a vague
|
|
redness of color not classifiable in terms of ordinary experience.
|
|
|
|
'Looks for all the world like a big husky sled-dog,' Bill said. 'I
|
|
wouldn't be s'prised to see it wag its tail.'
|
|
|
|
'Hello, you husky!' he called. 'Come here, you
|
|
whatever-your-name-is.'
|
|
|
|
'Ain't a bit scairt of you,' Henry laughed.
|
|
|
|
Bill waved his hand at it threateningly and shouted loudly; but
|
|
the animal betrayed no fear. The only change in it that they could
|
|
notice was an accession of alertness. It still regarded them with
|
|
the merciless wistfulness of hunger. They were meat and it was hungry;
|
|
and it would like to go in and eat them if it dared.
|
|
|
|
'Look here, Henry,' Bill said, unconsciously lowering his voice to a
|
|
whisper because of what he meditated. 'We've got three cartridges. But
|
|
it's a dead shot. Couldn't miss it. It's got away with three of our
|
|
dogs, an' we oughter put a stop to it. What d'ye say?'
|
|
|
|
Henry nodded his consent. Bill cautiously slipped the gun from under
|
|
the sled-lashing. The gun was on the way to his shoulder but it
|
|
never got there. For in that instant the she-wolf leaped sidewise from
|
|
the trail into the clump of spruce trees and disappeared.
|
|
|
|
The two men looked at each other. Henry whistled long and
|
|
comprehendingly.
|
|
|
|
'I might have knowed it,' Bill chided himself aloud, as he
|
|
replaced the gun. 'Of course a wolf that knows enough to come in
|
|
with the dogs at feedin' time, 'd know all about shooting-irons. I
|
|
tell you right now, Henry, that critter's the cause of all our
|
|
trouble. We'd have six dogs at the present time, 'stead of three, if
|
|
it wasn't for her. An' I tell you right now, Henry, I'm goin' to get
|
|
her. She's too smart to be shot in the open. But I'm goin' to lay
|
|
for her. I'll bushwhack her as sure as my name is Bill.'
|
|
|
|
'You needn't stray off too far in doin' it,' his partner admonished.
|
|
'If that pack ever starts to jump you, them three cartridges 'd be
|
|
wuth no more'n three whoops in hell. Them animals is damn hungry,
|
|
an' once they start in, they'll sure get you, Bill.'
|
|
|
|
They camped early that night. Three dogs could not drag the sled
|
|
so fast nor for so long hours as could six, and they were showing
|
|
unmistakable signs of playing out. And the men went early to bed, Bill
|
|
first seeing to it that the dogs were tied out of gnawing-reach of one
|
|
another.
|
|
|
|
But the wolves were growing bolder, and the men were aroused more
|
|
than once from their sleep. So near did the wolves approach, that
|
|
the dogs became frantic with terror, and it was necessary to replenish
|
|
the fire from time to time in order to keep the adventurous
|
|
marauders at safer distance.
|
|
|
|
'I've hearn sailors talk of sharks followin' a ship,' Bill remarked,
|
|
as he crawled back into the blankets after one such replenishing of
|
|
the fire. 'Well, them wolves is land sharks. They know their
|
|
business bettern'n we do, an' they ain't a-holdin' our trail this
|
|
way for their health. They're goin' to get us. They're sure goin' to
|
|
get us, Henry.'
|
|
|
|
'They've half got you a'ready, a-talkin' like that,' Henry
|
|
retorted sharply. 'A man's half licked when he says he is. An'
|
|
you're half eaten from the way you're goin' on about it.'
|
|
|
|
'They've got away with better men than you an' me,' Bill answered.
|
|
|
|
'Oh, shet up your croakin'. You make me all-fired tired.'
|
|
|
|
Henry rolled over angrily on his side, but was surprised that Bill
|
|
made no similar display of temper. This was not Bill's way, for he was
|
|
easily angered by sharp words. Henry thought long over it before he
|
|
went to sleep, and as his eyelids fluttered down and he dozed off, the
|
|
thought in his mind was: 'There's no mistakin' it, Bill's almighty
|
|
blue. I'll have to cheer him up tomorrow.'
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER THREE.
|
|
|
|
The Hunger Cry.
|
|
|
|
THE DAY BEGAN AUSPICIOUSLY. They had lost no dogs during the
|
|
night, and they swung out upon the trail and into the silence, the
|
|
darkness, and the cold with spirits that were fairly light. Bill
|
|
seemed to have forgotten his forebodings of the previous night, and
|
|
even waxed facetious with the dogs when, at midday, they overturned
|
|
the sled on a bad piece of trail.
|
|
|
|
It was an awkward mix-up. The sled was upside down and jammed
|
|
between a tree-trunk and a huge rock, and they were forced to
|
|
unharness the dogs in order to straighten out the tangle. The two
|
|
men were bent over the sled and trying to right it, when Henry
|
|
observed One Ear sidling away.
|
|
|
|
'Here, you, One Ear!' he cried, straightening up and turning
|
|
around on the dog.
|
|
|
|
But One Ear broke into a run across the snow, his traces trailing
|
|
behind him. And there, out in the snow on their back track, was the
|
|
she-wolf waiting for him. As he neared her, he became suddenly
|
|
cautious. He slowed down to an alert and mincing walk and then
|
|
stopped. He regarded her carefully and dubiously, yet desirefully. She
|
|
seemed to smile at him, showing her teeth in an ingratiating rather
|
|
than a menacing way. She moved towards him a few steps, playfully, and
|
|
then halted. One Ear drew near to her, still alert and cautious, his
|
|
tail and ears in the air, his head held high.
|
|
|
|
He tried to sniff noses with her, she retreated playfully and coyly.
|
|
Every advance on his part was accompanied by a corresponding retreat
|
|
on her part. Step by step she was luring him away from the security of
|
|
his human companionship. Once, as though a warning had in vague ways
|
|
flitted through his intelligence, he turned his head and looked back
|
|
at the overturned sled, at his team-mates, and at the two men who were
|
|
calling to him.
|
|
|
|
But whatever idea was forming in his mind, was dissipated by the
|
|
she-wolf, who advanced upon him, sniffed noses with him for a fleeting
|
|
instant, and then resumed her coy retreat before his renewed advances.
|
|
|
|
In the meantime, Bill had bethought himself of the rifle. But it was
|
|
jammed beneath the overturned sled, and by the time Henry had helped
|
|
him to right the load, One Ear and the she-wolf were too close
|
|
together and the distance too great to risk a shot.
|
|
|
|
Too late, One Ear learned his mistake. Before they saw the cause,
|
|
the two men saw him turn and start to run back toward them. Then,
|
|
approaching at right angles to the trail and cutting off his
|
|
retreat, they saw a dozen wolves, lean and gray, bounding across the
|
|
snow. On the instant, the she-wolf's coyness and playfulness
|
|
disappeared. With a snarl she sprang upon One Ear. He thrust her off
|
|
with his shoulder, and, his retreat cut off and still intent on
|
|
regaining the sled, he altered his course in an attempt to circle
|
|
around to it. More wolves were appearing every moment and joining in
|
|
the chase. The she-wolf was one leap behind One Ear and holding her
|
|
own.
|
|
|
|
'Where are you goin'?' Henry suddenly demanded, laying his hands
|
|
on his partner's arm.
|
|
|
|
Bill shook it off. 'I won't stand it,' he said. 'They ain't
|
|
a-goin' to get any more of our dogs if I can help it.'
|
|
|
|
Gun in hand he plunged into the underbrush that lined the side of
|
|
the trail. His intention was apparent enough. Taking the sled as the
|
|
center of the circle that One Ear was making, Bill planned to tap that
|
|
circle at a point in advance of the pursuit. With his rifle, in the
|
|
broad daylight, it might be possible for him to awe the wolves and
|
|
save the dog.
|
|
|
|
'Say, Bill!' Henry called after him. 'Be careful! Don't take no
|
|
chances!'
|
|
|
|
Henry sat down on the sled and watched. There was nothing else for
|
|
him to do. Bill had already gone from sight; but now and again,
|
|
appearing and disappearing amongst the underbrush and the scattered
|
|
clumps of spruce, could be seen One Ear. Henry judged his case to be
|
|
hopeless. The dog was thoroughly alive to its danger, but it was
|
|
running on the outer circle while the wolf-pack was running on the
|
|
inner and shorter circle. It was vain to think of One Ear so
|
|
outdistancing his pursuers as to be able to cut across their circle in
|
|
advance of them and to regain the sled.
|
|
|
|
The different lines were rapidly approaching a point. Somewhere
|
|
out there in the snow, screened from his sight by trees and
|
|
thickets, Henry knew that the wolf-pack, One Ear, and Bill were coming
|
|
together. All too quickly, far more quickly than he had expected, it
|
|
happened. He heard a shot, then two shots in rapid succession, and
|
|
he knew that Bill's ammunition was gone. Then he heard a great
|
|
outcry of snarls and yelps. He recognized One Ear's yell of pain and
|
|
terror and he heard a wolf-cry that bespoke a stricken animal. And
|
|
that was all. The snarls ceased. The yelping died away. Silence
|
|
settled down again over the lonely land.
|
|
|
|
He sat for a long while upon the sled. There was no need for him
|
|
to go and see what had happened. He knew it as though it had taken
|
|
place before his eyes. Once, he roused with a start and hastily got
|
|
the axe out from underneath the lashings. But for some time longer
|
|
he sat and brooded, the two remaining dogs crouching and trembling
|
|
at his feet.
|
|
|
|
At last he arose in a weary manner, as though all the resilience had
|
|
gone out of his body, and proceeded to fasten the dogs to the sled. He
|
|
passed a rope over his shoulder, a man-trace, and pulled with the
|
|
dogs. He did not go far. At the first hint of darkness he hastened
|
|
to make a camp, and he saw to it that he had a generous supply of
|
|
firewood. He fed the dogs, cooked and ate his supper, and made his bed
|
|
close to the fire.
|
|
|
|
But he was not destined to enjoy that bed. Before his eyes closed
|
|
the wolves had drawn too near for safety. It no longer required an
|
|
effort of the vision to see them. They were all about him and the
|
|
fire, in a narrow circle, and he could see them plainly in the
|
|
firelight, lying down, sitting up, crawling forward on their
|
|
bellies, or slinking back and forth. They even slept. Here and there
|
|
he could see one curled up in the snow like a dog taking the sleep
|
|
that was now denied himself.
|
|
|
|
He kept the fire brightly blazing, for he knew that it alone
|
|
intervened between the flesh of his body and their hungry fangs. His
|
|
two dogs stayed close to him, one on either side, leaning against
|
|
him for protection, crying and whimpering, and at times snarling
|
|
desperately when a wolf approached a little closer than usual. At such
|
|
moments, when his dogs snarled, the whole circle would be agitated,
|
|
the wolves coming to their feet and pressing tentatively forward, a
|
|
chorus of snarls and eager yelps rising about him. Then the circle
|
|
would lie down again, and here and there a wolf would resume its
|
|
broken nap.
|
|
|
|
But this circle had a continuous tendency to draw in upon him. Bit
|
|
by bit, an inch at a time, with here a wolf bellying forward, and
|
|
there a wolf bellying forward, the circle would narrow until the
|
|
brutes were almost within springing distance. Then he would seize
|
|
brands from the fire and hurl them into the pack. A hasty drawing back
|
|
always resulted, accompanied by angry yelps and frightened snarls when
|
|
a well-aimed brand struck and scorched a too daring animal.
|
|
|
|
Morning found the man haggard and worn, wide-eyed from want of
|
|
sleep. He cooked breakfast in the darkness, and at nine o'clock, when,
|
|
with the coming of daylight, the wolf-pack drew back, he set about the
|
|
task he had planned through the long hours of the night. Chopping down
|
|
young saplings, he made them cross-bars of a scaffold by lashing
|
|
them high up to the trunks of standing trees. Using the
|
|
sled-lashings for a heaving rope, and with the aid of the dogs, he
|
|
hoisted the coffin to the top of the scaffold.
|
|
|
|
'They got Bill, an' they may get me, but they'll never sure get you,
|
|
young man,' he said, addressing the dead body in its tree-sepulchre.
|
|
|
|
Then he took the trail, the lightened sled bounding along behind the
|
|
willing dogs; for they, too, knew that safety lay only in the
|
|
gaining of Fort McGurry. The wolves were now more open in their
|
|
pursuit, trotting sedately behind and ranging along on either side,
|
|
their red tongues lolling out, their lean sides showing the undulating
|
|
ribs with every movement. They were very lean, mere skin-bags
|
|
stretched over bony frames, with strings for muscles- so lean that
|
|
Henry found it in his mind to marvel that they still kept their feet
|
|
and did not collapse forthright in the snow.
|
|
|
|
He did not dare travel until dark. At midday, not only did the sun
|
|
warm the southern horizon, but it even thrust its upper rim, pale
|
|
and golden, above the skyline. He received it as a sign. The days were
|
|
growing longer. The sun was returning. But scarcely had the cheer of
|
|
its light departed, than he went into camp. There were still several
|
|
hours of gray daylight and sombre twilight, and he utilized them in
|
|
chopping an enormous supply of firewood.
|
|
|
|
With night came horror. Not only were the starving wolves growing
|
|
bolder, but lack of sleep was telling upon Henry. He dozed despite
|
|
himself, crouching by the fire, the blankets about his shoulders,
|
|
the axe between his knees, and on either side a dog pressing close
|
|
against him. He awoke once and saw in front of him, not a dozen feet
|
|
away, a big gray wolf, one of the largest of the pack. And even as
|
|
he looked, the brute deliberately stretched himself after the manner
|
|
of a lazy dog, yawning full in his face and looking upon him with a
|
|
possessive eye, as if, in truth, he were merely a delayed meal that
|
|
was soon to be eaten.
|
|
|
|
This certitude was shown by the whole pack. Fully a score he could
|
|
count, staring hungrily at him or calmly sleeping in the snow. They
|
|
reminded him of children gathered about a spread table and awaiting
|
|
permission to begin to eat. And he was the food they were to eat! He
|
|
wondered how and when the meal would begin.
|
|
|
|
As he piled wood on the fire he discovered an appreciation of his
|
|
own body which he had never felt before. He watched his moving muscles
|
|
and was interested in the cunning mechanism of his fingers. By the
|
|
light of the fire he crooked his fingers slowly and repeatedly, now
|
|
one at a time, now all together, spreading them wide or making quick
|
|
gripping movements. He studied the nail-formation, and prodded the
|
|
fingertips, now sharply, and again softly, gauging the while the
|
|
nerve-sensations produced. It fascinated him, and he grew suddenly
|
|
fond of this subtle flesh of his that worked so beautifully and
|
|
smoothly and delicately. Then he would cast a glance of fear at the
|
|
wolf-circle drawn expectantly about him, and like a blow the
|
|
realization would strike him that this wonderful body of his, this
|
|
living flesh, was no more than so much meat, a quest of ravenous
|
|
animals, to be torn and slashed by their hungry fangs, to be
|
|
sustenance to them as the moose and the rabbit had often been
|
|
sustenance to him.
|
|
|
|
He came out of a doze that was half nightmare, to see the red-hued
|
|
she-wolf before him. She was not more than half a dozen feet away,
|
|
sitting in the snow and wistfully regarding him. The two dogs were
|
|
whimpering and snarling at his feet, but she took no notice of them.
|
|
She was looking at the man, and for some time he returned her look.
|
|
There was nothing threatening about her. She looked at him merely with
|
|
a great wistfulness, but he knew it to be the wistfulness of an
|
|
equally great hunger. He was the food, and the sight of him excited in
|
|
her the gustatory sensations. Her mouth opened, the saliva drooled
|
|
forth, and she licked her chops with the pleasure of anticipation.
|
|
|
|
A spasm of fear went through him. He reached hastily for a brand
|
|
to throw at her. But even as he reached, and before his fingers had
|
|
closed on the missile, she sprang back into safety; and he knew that
|
|
she was used to having things thrown at her. She had snarled as she
|
|
sprang away, baring her white fangs to their roots, all her
|
|
wistfulness vanishing, being replaced by a carnivorous malignity
|
|
that made him shudder. He glanced at the hand that held the brand,
|
|
noticing the cunning delicacy of the fingers that gripped it, how they
|
|
adjusted themselves to all the inequalities of the surface, curling
|
|
over and under and about the rough wood, and one little finger, too
|
|
close to the burning portion of the brand, sensitively and
|
|
automatically writhing back from the hurtful heat to a cooler
|
|
gripping-place; and in the same instant he seemed to see a vision of
|
|
those same sensitive and delicate fingers being crushed and torn by
|
|
the white teeth of the she-wolf. Never had he been so fond of this
|
|
body of his as now when his tenure of it was so precarious.
|
|
|
|
All night, with burning brands, he fought off the hungry pack.
|
|
When he dozed despite himself, the whimpering and snarling of the dogs
|
|
aroused him. Morning came, but for the first time the light of day
|
|
failed to scatter the wolves. The man waited in vain for them to go.
|
|
They remained in a circle about him and his fire, displaying an
|
|
arrogance of possession that shook his courage born of the morning
|
|
light.
|
|
|
|
He made one desperate attempt to pull out on the trail. But the
|
|
moment he left the protection of the fire, the boldest wolf leaped for
|
|
him, but leaped short. He saved himself by springing back, the jaws
|
|
snapping together a scant six inches from his thigh. The rest of the
|
|
pack was now up and surging upon him, and a throwing of firebrands
|
|
right and left was necessary to drive them back to a respectful
|
|
distance.
|
|
|
|
Even in the daylight he did not dare leave the fire to chop fresh
|
|
wood. Twenty feet away towered a huge dead spruce. He spent half the
|
|
day extending his campfire to the tree, at any moment a half dozen
|
|
burning fagots ready at hand to fling at his enemies. Once at the
|
|
tree, he studied the surrounding forest in order to fell the tree in
|
|
the direction of the most firewood.
|
|
|
|
The night was a repetition of the night before, save that the need
|
|
for sleep was becoming overpowering. The snarling of his dogs was
|
|
losing its efficacy. Besides, they were snarling all the time, and his
|
|
benumbed and drowsy senses no longer took note of changing pitch and
|
|
intensity. He awoke with a start. The she-wolf was less than a yard
|
|
from him. Mechanically, at short range, without letting go of it, he
|
|
thrust a brand full into her open and snarling mouth. She sprang away,
|
|
yelling with pain, and while he took delight in the smell of burning
|
|
flesh and hair, he watched her shaking her head and growling
|
|
wrathfully a score of feet away.
|
|
|
|
But this time, before he dozed again, he tied a burning pine-knot to
|
|
his right hand. His eyes were closed but a few minutes when the burn
|
|
of the flame on his flesh awakened him. For several hours he adhered
|
|
to this program. Every time he was thus awakened he drove back the
|
|
wolves with flying brands, replenished the fire, and rearranged the
|
|
pine-knot on his hand. All worked well, but there came a time when
|
|
he fastened the pine-knot insecurely. As his eyes closed it fell
|
|
away from his hand.
|
|
|
|
He dreamed. It seemed to him that he was in Fort McGurry. It was
|
|
warm and comfortable, and he was playing cribbage with the Factor.
|
|
Also, it seemed to him that the fort was besieged by wolves. They were
|
|
howling at the very gates, and sometimes he and the Factor paused from
|
|
the game to listen and laugh at the futile efforts of the wolves to
|
|
get in. And then, so strange was the dream, there was a crash. The
|
|
door burst open. He could see the wolves flooding into the big
|
|
living-room of the fort. They were leaping straight for him and the
|
|
Factor. With the bursting open of the door, the noise of their howling
|
|
had increased tremendously. This howling now bothered him. His dream
|
|
was merging into something else- he knew not what; but through it all,
|
|
following him, persisted the howling.
|
|
|
|
And then he awoke to find the howling real. There was a great
|
|
snarling and yelping. The wolves were rushing him. They were all about
|
|
him and upon him. The teeth of one had closed upon his arm.
|
|
Instinctively he leaped into the fire, and as he leaped, he felt the
|
|
sharp slash of teeth that tore through the flesh of his leg. Then
|
|
began a fire fight. His stout mittens temporarily protected his hands,
|
|
and he scooped live coals into the air in all directions, until the
|
|
campfire took on the semblance of a volcano.
|
|
|
|
But it could not last long. His face was blistering in the heat, his
|
|
eyebrows and lashes were singed off, and the heat was becoming
|
|
unbearable to his feet. With a flaming brand in each hand, he sprang
|
|
to the edge of the fire. The wolves had been driven back. On every
|
|
side, wherever the live coals had fallen, the snow was sizzling, and
|
|
every little while a retiring wolf, with wild leap and snort and
|
|
snarl, announced that one such live coal had been stepped upon.
|
|
|
|
Flinging his brands at the nearest of his enemies. the man thrust
|
|
his smouldering mittens into the snow and stamped about to cool his
|
|
feet. His two dogs were missing, and he well knew that they had served
|
|
as a course in the protracted meal which had begun days before with
|
|
Fatty, the last course of which would likely be himself in the days to
|
|
follow.
|
|
|
|
'You ain't got me yet!' he cried, savagely shaking his fist at the
|
|
hungry beasts; and at the sound of his voice the whole circle was
|
|
agitated, there was a general snarl, and the she-wolf slid up close to
|
|
him across the snow and watched him with hungry wistfulness.
|
|
|
|
He set to work to carry out a new idea that had come to him. He
|
|
extended the fire into a large circle. Inside this circle he crouched,
|
|
his sleeping outfit under him as a protection against the melting
|
|
snow. When he had thus disappeared within his shelter of flame, the
|
|
whole pack came curiously to the rim of the fire to see what had
|
|
become of him. Hitherto they had been denied access to the fire, and
|
|
they now settled down in a close-drawn circle, like so many dogs,
|
|
blinking and yawning and stretching their lean bodies in the
|
|
unaccustomed warmth. Then the she-wolf sat down, pointed her nose at a
|
|
star, and began to howl. One by one the wolves joined her, till the
|
|
whole pack, on haunches, with noses pointed skyward, was howling its
|
|
hunger cry.
|
|
|
|
Dawn came, and daylight. The fire was burning low. The fuel had
|
|
run out, and there was need to get more. The man attempted to step out
|
|
of his circle of flame, but the wolves surged to meet him. Burning
|
|
brands made them spring aside, but they no longer sprang back. In vain
|
|
he strove to drive them back. As he gave up and stumbled inside his
|
|
circle, a wolf leaped for him, missed, and landed with all four feet
|
|
in the coals. It cried out with terror, at the same time snarling, and
|
|
scrambled back to cool its paws in the snow.
|
|
|
|
The man sat down on his blankets in a crouching position. His body
|
|
leaned forward from the hips. His shoulders, relaxed and drooping, and
|
|
his head on his knees advertised that he had given up the struggle.
|
|
Now and again he raised his head to note the dying down of the fire.
|
|
The circle of flame and coals was breaking into segments with openings
|
|
in between. These openings grew in size, the segments diminished.
|
|
|
|
'I guess you can come an' get me any time,' he mumbled. 'Anyway, I'm
|
|
goin' to sleep.'
|
|
|
|
Once he wakened, and in an opening in the circle, directly in
|
|
front of him, he saw the she-wolf gazing at him. Again he awakened,
|
|
a little later, though it seemed hours to him. A mysterious change had
|
|
taken place- so mysterious a change that he was shocked wider awake.
|
|
Something had happened. He could not understand at first. Then he
|
|
discovered it. The wolves were gone. Remained only the trampled snow
|
|
to show how closely they had pressed him. Sleep was welling up and
|
|
gripping him again, his head was sinking down upon his knees, when
|
|
he roused with a sudden start.
|
|
|
|
There were cries of men, the churn of sleds, the creaking of
|
|
harnesses, and the eager whimpering of straining dogs. Four sleds
|
|
pulled in from the river bed to the camp among the trees. Half a dozen
|
|
men were about the man who crouched in the center of the dying fire.
|
|
They were shaking and prodding him into consciousness. He looked at
|
|
them like a drunken man and maundered in strange, sleepy speech:
|
|
|
|
'Red she-wolf... Come in with the dogs at feedin' time... First
|
|
she ate the dog-food... Then she ate the dogs... An' after that she
|
|
ate Bill...'
|
|
|
|
'Where's Lord Alfred?' one of the men bellowed in his ear, shaking
|
|
him roughly.
|
|
|
|
He shook his head slowly. 'No, she didn't eat him... He's roostin'
|
|
in a tree at the last camp.'
|
|
|
|
'Dead?' the man shouted.
|
|
|
|
'An' in a box,' Henry answered. He jerked his shoulder petulantly
|
|
away from the grip of his questioner. 'Say, you lemme alone. I'm jes
|
|
plumb tuckered out... Good night, everybody.'
|
|
|
|
His eyes fluttered and went shut. His chin fell forward on his
|
|
chest. And even as they eased him down upon the blankets his snores
|
|
were rising on the frosty air.
|
|
|
|
But there was another sound. Far and faint it was, in the remote
|
|
distance, the cry of the hungry wolf-pack as it took the trail of
|
|
other meat than the man it had just missed.
|
|
|
|
PART TWO.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER ONE.
|
|
|
|
The Battle of the Fangs.
|
|
|
|
IT WAS THE SHE-WOLF who had first caught the sound of men's voices
|
|
and the whining of the sled-dogs; and it was the she-wolf who was
|
|
first to spring away from the cornered man in his circle of dying
|
|
flame. The pack had been loath to forego the kill it had hunted
|
|
down, and it lingered for several minutes, making sure of the
|
|
sounds; and then it, too, sprang away on the trail made by the
|
|
she-wolf.
|
|
|
|
Running at the forefront of the pack was a large gray wolf- one of
|
|
its several leaders. It was he who directed the pack's course on the
|
|
heels of the she-wolf. It was he who snarled warningly at the
|
|
younger members of the pack or slashed at them with his fangs when
|
|
they ambitiously tried to pass him. And it was he who increased the
|
|
pace when he sighted the she-wolf, now trotting slowly across the
|
|
snow.
|
|
|
|
She dropped in alongside by him, as though it were her appointed
|
|
position, and took the pace of the pack. He did not snarl at her,
|
|
nor show his teeth, when any leap of hers chanced to put her in
|
|
advance of him. On the contrary, he seemed kindly disposed toward her-
|
|
too kindly to suit her, for he was prone to run near to her, and
|
|
when he ran too near it was she who snarled and showed her teeth.
|
|
Nor was she above slashing his shoulder sharply on occasion. At such
|
|
times he betrayed no anger. He merely sprang to the side and ran
|
|
stiffly ahead for several awkward leaps, in carriage and conduct
|
|
resembling an abashed country swain.
|
|
|
|
This was his one trouble in the running of the pack; but she had
|
|
other troubles. On her other side ran a gaunt old wolf, grizzled and
|
|
marked with the scars of many battles. He ran always on her right
|
|
side. The fact that he had but one eye, and that the left eye, might
|
|
account for this. He, also, was addicted to crowding her, to veering
|
|
toward her till his scarred muzzle touched her body, or shoulder, or
|
|
neck. As with the running mate on the left, she repelled these
|
|
attentions with her teeth; but when both bestowed their attentions
|
|
at the same time she was roughly jostled, being compelled, with
|
|
quick snaps to either side, to drive both lovers away and at the
|
|
same time to maintain her forward leap with the pack and see the way
|
|
of her feet before her. At such times her running mates flashed
|
|
their teeth and growled threateningly across at each other. They might
|
|
have fought, but even wooing and its rivalry waited upon the more
|
|
pressing hunger-need of the pack.
|
|
|
|
After each repulse, when the old wolf sheered abruptly away from the
|
|
sharp-toothed object of his desire, he shouldered against a young
|
|
three-year-old that ran on his blind right side. This young wolf had
|
|
attained his full size; and, considering the weak and famished
|
|
condition of the pack, he possessed more than the average vigor and
|
|
spirit. Nevertheless, he ran with his head even with the shoulder of
|
|
his one-eyed elder. When he ventured to run abreast of the older
|
|
wolf (which was seldom), a snarl and a snap sent him back even with
|
|
the shoulder again. Sometimes, however, he dropped cautiously and
|
|
slowly behind and edged in between the old leader and the she-wolf-
|
|
This was doubly resented, even triply resented. When she snarled her
|
|
displeasure, the old leader would whirl on the three-year-old.
|
|
Sometimes she whirled with him. And sometimes the young leader on
|
|
the left whirled, too.
|
|
|
|
At such times, confronted by three sets of savage teeth, the young
|
|
wolf stopped precipitately, throwing himself back on his haunches,
|
|
with forelegs stiff, mouth menacing, and mane bristling. This
|
|
confusion in the front of the moving pack always caused confusion in
|
|
the rear. The wolves behind collided with the young wolf and expressed
|
|
their displeasure by administering sharp nips on his hind-legs and
|
|
flanks. He was laying up trouble for himself, for lack of food and
|
|
short tempers went together; but with the boundless faith of youth
|
|
he persisted in repeating the maneuver every little while, though it
|
|
never succeeded in gaining anything for him but discomfiture.
|
|
|
|
Had there been food, love-making and fighting would have gone on
|
|
apace, and the pack-formation would have been broken up. But the
|
|
situation of the pack was desperate. It was lean with long-standing
|
|
hunger. It ran below its ordinary speed. At the rear limped the weak
|
|
members, the very young and the very old. At the front were the
|
|
strongest. Yet all were more like skeletons than full-bodied wolves.
|
|
Nevertheless, with the exception of the ones that limped, the
|
|
movements of the animals were effortless and tireless. Their stringy
|
|
muscles seemed founts of inexhaustible energy. Behind every steel-like
|
|
contraction of a muscle lay another steel-like contraction, and
|
|
another, apparently without end.
|
|
|
|
They ran many miles that day. They ran through the night. And the
|
|
next day found them still running. They were running over the
|
|
surface of a world frozen and dead. No life stirred. They alone
|
|
moved through the vast inertness. They alone were alive, and they
|
|
sought for other things that were alive in order that they might
|
|
devour them and continue to live.
|
|
|
|
They crossed low divides and ranged a dozen small streams in a
|
|
lower-lying country before their quest was rewarded. Then they came
|
|
upon moose. It was a big bull they first found. Here was meat and
|
|
life, and it was guarded by no mysterious fires nor flying missiles of
|
|
flame. Splay hoofs and palmated antlers they knew, and they flung
|
|
their customary patience and caution to the wind. It was a brief fight
|
|
and fierce. The big bull was beset on every side. He ripped them
|
|
open or split their skulls with shrewdly driven blows of his great
|
|
hoofs. He crushed them and broke them on his large horns. He stamped
|
|
them into the snow under him in the wallowing struggle. But he was
|
|
foredoomed, and he went down with the she-wolf tearing savagely at his
|
|
throat, and with other teeth fixed everywhere upon him, devouring
|
|
him alive, before ever his last struggles ceased or his last damage
|
|
had been wrought.
|
|
|
|
There was food in plenty. The bull weighed over eight hundred
|
|
pounds- fully twenty pounds of meat per mouth for the forty-odd wolves
|
|
of the pack. But if they could fast prodigiously, they could feed
|
|
prodigiously, and soon a few scattered bones were all that remained of
|
|
the splendid live brute that had faced the pack a few hours before.
|
|
|
|
There was now much resting and sleeping. With full stomachs,
|
|
bickering and quarreling began among the younger males, and this
|
|
continued through the few days that followed before the breaking-up of
|
|
the pack. The famine was over. The wolves were now in the country of
|
|
game, and though they still hunted in pack, they hunted more
|
|
cautiously, cutting out heavy cows or crippled old bulls from the
|
|
small moose-herds they ran across.
|
|
|
|
There came a day, in this land of plenty, when the wolf-pack split
|
|
in half and went in different directions. The she-wolf, the young
|
|
leader on her left, and the one-eyed elder on her right, led their
|
|
half of the pack down to the Mackenzie River and across into the
|
|
lake country to the east. Each day this remnant of the pack
|
|
dwindled. Two by two, male and female, the wolves were deserting.
|
|
Occasionally a solitary male was driven out by the sharp teeth of
|
|
his rivals. In the end there remained only four: the she-wolf, the
|
|
young leader, the one-eyed one, and the ambitious three-year-old.
|
|
|
|
The she-wolf had by now developed a ferocious temper. Her three
|
|
suitors all bore the marks of her teeth. Yet they never replied in
|
|
kind, never defended themselves against her. They turned their
|
|
shoulders to her most savage slashes, and with wagging tails and
|
|
mincing steps strove to placate her wrath. But if they were all
|
|
mildness toward her, they were all fierceness toward one another.
|
|
The three-year-old grew too ambitious in his fierceness. He caught the
|
|
one-eyed elder on his blind side and ripped his ear into ribbons.
|
|
Though the grizzled old fellow could see only on one side, against the
|
|
youth and vigor of the other he brought into play the wisdom of long
|
|
years of experience. His lost eye and his scarred muzzle bore evidence
|
|
to the nature of his experience. He had survived too many battles to
|
|
be in doubt for a moment about what to do.
|
|
|
|
The battle began fairly, but it did not end fairly. There was no
|
|
telling what the outcome would have been, for the third wolf joined
|
|
the elder, and together, old leader and young leader, they attacked
|
|
the ambitious three-year-old and proceeded to destroy him. He was
|
|
beset on either side by the merciless fangs of his erstwhile comrades.
|
|
Forgotten were the days they had hunted together, the game they had
|
|
pulled down, the famine they had suffered. That business was a thing
|
|
of the past. The business of love was at hand- even a sterner and
|
|
crueler business than that of food-getting.
|
|
|
|
And in the meanwhile, the she-wolf, the cause of it all, sat down
|
|
contentedly on her haunches and watched. She was even pleased. This
|
|
was her day- and it came not often- when manes bristled, and fang
|
|
smote fang or ripped and tore the yielding flesh, all for the
|
|
possession of her.
|
|
|
|
And in the business of love the three-year-old who had made this his
|
|
first adventure upon it yielded up his life. On either side of his
|
|
body stood his two rivals. They were gazing at the she-wolf, who sat
|
|
smiling in the snow. But the elder leader was wise, very wise, in love
|
|
even as in battle. The younger leader turned his head to lick a
|
|
wound on his shoulder. The curve of his neck was turned toward his
|
|
rival. With his one eye the elder saw the opportunity. He darted in
|
|
low and closed with his fangs. It was a long, ripping slash, and
|
|
deep as well. His teeth, in passing, burst the wall of the great
|
|
vein of the throat. Then he leaped clear.
|
|
|
|
The young leader snarled terribly, but his snarl broke midmost
|
|
into a tickling cough. Bleeding and coughing, already stricken, he
|
|
sprang at the elder and fought while life faded from him, his legs
|
|
going weak beneath him, the light of day dulling on his eyes, his
|
|
blows and springs falling shorter and shorter.
|
|
|
|
And all the while the she-wolf sat on her haunches and smiled. She
|
|
was made glad in vague ways by the battle, for this was the
|
|
love-making of the Wild, the sex-tragedy of the natural world that was
|
|
tragedy only to those that died. To those that survived it was not
|
|
tragedy, but realization and achievement.
|
|
|
|
When the young leader lay in the snow and moved no more, One Eye
|
|
stalked over to the she-wolf. His carriage was one of mingled
|
|
triumph and caution. He was plainly expectant of a rebuff, and he
|
|
was just as plainly surprised when her teeth did not flash out at
|
|
him in anger. For the first time she met him with a kindly manner. She
|
|
sniffed noses with him, and even condescended to leap about and
|
|
frisk and play with him in quite puppyish fashion. And he, for all his
|
|
gray years and sage experience, behaved quite as puppyishly and even a
|
|
little more foolishly.
|
|
|
|
Forgotten already were the vanquished rivals and the love-tale
|
|
red-written on the snow. Forgotten, save once, when old One Eye
|
|
stopped for a moment to lick his stiffening wounds. Then it was that
|
|
his lips half writhed into a snarl, and the hair of his neck and
|
|
shoulders involuntarily bristled, while he half crouched for a spring,
|
|
his claws spasmodically clutching into the snow-surface for firmer
|
|
footing. But it was all forgotten the next moment, as he sprang
|
|
after the she-wolf, who was coyly leading him a chase through the
|
|
woods.
|
|
|
|
After that they ran side by side, like good friends who have come to
|
|
an understanding. The days passed by, and they kept together,
|
|
hunting their meat and killing and eating it in common. After a time
|
|
the she-wolf began to grow restless. She seemed to be searching for
|
|
something that she could not find. The hollows under fallen trees
|
|
seemed to attract her, and she spent much time nosing about among
|
|
the larger snow-piled crevices in the rocks and in the caves of
|
|
overhanging banks. Old One Eye was not interested at all, but he
|
|
followed her good-naturedly in her quest, and when her
|
|
investigations in particular places were unusually protracted, he
|
|
would lie down and wait until she was ready to go on.
|
|
|
|
They did not remain in one place, but traveled across country
|
|
until they regained the Mackenzie River, down which they slowly
|
|
went, leaving it often to hunt game along the small streams that
|
|
entered it, but always returning to it again. Sometimes they chanced
|
|
upon other wolves, usually in pairs; but there was no friendliness
|
|
of intercourse displayed on either side, no gladness at meeting, no
|
|
desire to return to the pack-formation. Several times they encountered
|
|
solitary wolves. These were always males, and they were pressingly
|
|
insistent on joining with One Eye and his mate. This he resented,
|
|
and when she stood shoulder to shoulder with him, bristling and
|
|
showing her teeth, the aspiring solitary ones would back off, turn
|
|
tail, and continue on their lonely way.
|
|
|
|
One moonlight night, running through the quiet forest, One Eye
|
|
suddenly halted. His muzzle went up, his tail stiffened, and his
|
|
nostrils dilated as he scented the air. One foot also he held up,
|
|
after the manner of a dog. He was not satisfied, and he continued to
|
|
smell the air, striving to understand the message borne upon it to
|
|
him. One careless sniff had satisfied his mate, and she trotted on
|
|
to reassure him. Though he followed her, he was still dubious, and
|
|
he could not forbear an occasional halt in order more carefully to
|
|
study the warning.
|
|
|
|
She crept out cautiously on the edge of a large open space in the
|
|
midst of the trees. For some time she stood alone. Then One Eye,
|
|
creeping and crawling, every sense on the alert, every hair
|
|
radiating infinite suspicion, joined her. They stood side by side,
|
|
watching and listening and smelling.
|
|
|
|
To their ears came the sounds of dogs wrangling and scuffling, the
|
|
guttural cries of men, the sharper voices of scolding women, and
|
|
once the shrill and plaintive cry of a child. With the exception of
|
|
the huge bulks of the skin lodges, little could be seen save the
|
|
flames of the fire, broken by the movements of intervening bodies, and
|
|
the smoke rising slowly on the quiet air. But to their nostrils came
|
|
the myriad smells of an Indian camp, carrying a story that was largely
|
|
incomprehensible to One Eye, but every detail of which the she-wolf
|
|
knew.
|
|
|
|
She was strangely stirred, and sniffed and sniffed with an
|
|
increasing delight. But old One Eye was doubtful. He betrayed his
|
|
apprehension, and started tentatively to go. She turned and touched
|
|
his neck with her muzzle in a reassuring way, then regarded the camp
|
|
again. A new wistfulness was in her face, but it was not the
|
|
wistfulness of hunger. She was thrilling to a desire that urged her to
|
|
go forward, to be in closer to that fire, to be squabbling with the
|
|
dogs, and to be avoiding and dodging the stumbling feet of men.
|
|
|
|
One Eye moved impatiently beside her; her unrest came back upon her,
|
|
and she knew again her pressing need to find the thing for which she
|
|
searched. She turned and trotted back into the forest, to the great
|
|
relief of One Eye, who trotted a little to the fore until they were
|
|
well within the shelter of the trees.
|
|
|
|
As they slid along, noiseless as shadows, in the moonlight, they
|
|
came upon a runway. Both noses went down to the footprints in the
|
|
snow. These footprints were very fresh. One Eye ran ahead
|
|
cautiously, his mate at his heels. The broad pads of their feet were
|
|
spread wide and in contact with the snow were like velvet. One Eye
|
|
caught sight of a dim movement of white in the midst of the white. His
|
|
sliding gait had been deceptively swift, but it was as nothing to
|
|
the speed at which he now ran. Before him was bounding the faint patch
|
|
of white he had discovered.
|
|
|
|
They were running along a narrow alley flanked on either side by a
|
|
growth of young spruce. Through the trees, the mouth of the alley
|
|
could be seen, opening out on a moonlight glade. Old One Eye was
|
|
rapidly overhauling the fleeing shape of white. Bound by bound he
|
|
gained. Now he was upon it. One leap more and his teeth would be
|
|
sinking into it. But that leap was never made. High in the air, and
|
|
straight up, soared the shape of white, now a struggling snowshoe
|
|
rabbit that leaped and bounded, executing a fantastic dance there
|
|
above him in the air and never once returning to earth.
|
|
|
|
One Eye sprang back with a sort of sudden fright, then shrank down
|
|
to the snow and crouched, snarling threats at this thing of fear he
|
|
did not understand. But the she-wolf coolly thrust past him. She
|
|
poised for a moment, then sprang for the dancing rabbit. She, too,
|
|
soared high, but not so high as the quarry, and her teeth clipped
|
|
emptily together with a metallic snap. She made another leap, and
|
|
another.
|
|
|
|
Her mate had slowly relaxed from his crouch and was watching her. He
|
|
now evinced displeasure at her repeated failures, and himself made a
|
|
mighty spring upward. His teeth closed upon the rabbit, and he bore it
|
|
back to earth with him. But at the same time there was a suspicious
|
|
crackling movement beside him, and his astonished eyes saw a young
|
|
spruce sapling bending down above him to strike him. His jaws let go
|
|
their grip, and he leaped backward to escape this strange danger,
|
|
his lips drawn back from his fangs, his throat snarling, every hair
|
|
bristling with rage and fright. And in that moment the sapling
|
|
reared its slender length upright and the rabbit soared dancing in the
|
|
air again.
|
|
|
|
The she-wolf was angry. She sank her fangs into her mate's
|
|
shoulder in reproof; and he, frightened, unaware of what constituted
|
|
this new onslaught, struck back ferociously and in still greater
|
|
fright, ripping down the side of the she-wolf's muzzle. For him to
|
|
resent such reproof was equally unexpected to her, and she sprang upon
|
|
him in snarling indignation. Then he discovered his mistake and
|
|
tried to placate her. But she proceeded to punish him roundly, until
|
|
he gave over all attempts at placation, and whirled in a circle, his
|
|
head away from her, his shoulders receiving the punishment of her
|
|
teeth.
|
|
|
|
In the meantime the rabbit danced above them in the air. The
|
|
she-wolf sat down in the snow, and old One Eye, now more in fear of
|
|
his mate than of the mysterious sapling, again sprang for the
|
|
rabbit. As he sank back with it between his teeth, he kept his eye
|
|
on the sapling. As before, it followed him back to earth. He
|
|
crouched down under the impending blow, his hair bristling, but his
|
|
teeth still keeping tight hold of the rabbit. But the blow did not
|
|
fall. The sapling remained bent above him. When he moved it moved, and
|
|
he growled at it through his clenched jaws; when he remained still, it
|
|
remained still, and he concluded it was safer to continue remaining
|
|
still. Yet the warm blood of the rabbit tasted good in his mouth.
|
|
|
|
It was his mate who relieved him from the quandary in which he found
|
|
himself. She took the rabbit from him, and while the sapling swayed
|
|
and teetered threateningly above her she calmly gnawed off the
|
|
rabbit's head. At once the sapling shot up, and after that gave no
|
|
more trouble, remaining in the decorous and perpendicular position
|
|
in which nature had intended it to grow. Then, between them, the
|
|
she-wolf and One Eye devoured the game which the mysterious sapling
|
|
had caught for them.
|
|
|
|
There were other runways and alleys where rabbits were hanging in
|
|
the air, and the wolf-pair prospected them all, the she-wolf leading
|
|
the way, old One Eye following and observant, learning the method of
|
|
robbing snares- a knowledge destined to stand him in good stead in the
|
|
days to come.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER TWO.
|
|
|
|
The Lair.
|
|
|
|
FOR TWO DAYS THE SHE-WOLF and One Eye hung about the Indian camp. He
|
|
was worried and apprehensive, yet the camp lured his mate and she
|
|
was loath to depart. But when, one morning, the air was rent with
|
|
the report of a rifle close at hand, and a bullet smashed against a
|
|
tree trunk several inches from One Eye's head, they hesitated no more,
|
|
but went off on a long, swinging lope that put quick miles between
|
|
them and the danger.
|
|
|
|
They did not go far- a couple of days' journey. The she-wolf's
|
|
need to find the thing for which she searched had now become
|
|
imperative. She was getting very heavy, and could run but slowly.
|
|
Once, in the pursuit of a rabbit, which she ordinarily would have
|
|
caught with ease, she gave over and lay down and rested. One Eye
|
|
came to her; but when he touched her neck gently with his muzzle she
|
|
snapped at him with such quick fierceness that he tumbled over
|
|
backward and cut a ridiculous figure in his effort to escape her
|
|
teeth. Her temper was now shorter than ever; but he had become more
|
|
patient than ever and more solicitous.
|
|
|
|
And then she found the thing for which she sought. It was a few
|
|
miles up a small stream that in the summer time flowed into the
|
|
Mackenzie, but that then was frozen over and frozen down to its
|
|
rocky bottom- a dead stream of solid white from source to mouth. The
|
|
she-wolf was trotting wearily along, her mate well in advance, when
|
|
she came upon the overhanging, high clay-bank. She turned aside and
|
|
trotted over to it. The wear and tear of spring storms and melting
|
|
snows had under-washed the bank and in one place had made a small cave
|
|
out of a narrow fissure.
|
|
|
|
She paused at the mouth of the cave and looked the wall over
|
|
carefully. Then, on one side and the other, she ran along the base
|
|
of the wall to where its abrupt bulk merged from the softer-lined
|
|
landscape. Returning to the cave, she entered its narrow mouth. For
|
|
a short three feet she was compelled to crouch, then the walls widened
|
|
and rose higher in a little round chamber nearly six feet in diameter.
|
|
The roof barely cleared her head. It was dry and cosy. She inspected
|
|
it with painstaking care, while One Eye, who had returned, stood in
|
|
the entrance and patiently watched her. She dropped her head, with her
|
|
nose to the ground and directed toward a point near to her closely
|
|
bunched feet, and around this point she circled several times; then,
|
|
with a tired sigh that was almost a grunt, she curled her body in,
|
|
relaxed her legs, and dropped down, her head toward the entrance.
|
|
One Eye, with pointed, interested ears, laughed at her, and beyond,
|
|
outlined against the white light, she could see the brush of his
|
|
tail waving good-naturedly. Her own ears, with a snuggling movement,
|
|
laid their sharp points backward and down against the head for a
|
|
moment, while her mouth opened and her tongue lolled peaceably out,
|
|
and in this way she expressed that she was pleased and satisfied.
|
|
|
|
One Eye was hungry. Though he lay down in the entrance and slept,
|
|
his sleep was fitful. He kept awaking and cocking his ears at the
|
|
bright world without, where the April sun was blazing across the snow.
|
|
When he dozed, upon his ears would steal the faint whispers of
|
|
hidden trickles of running water, and he would rouse and listen
|
|
intently. The sun had come back, and all the awakening Northland world
|
|
was calling to him. Life was stirring. The feel of spring was in the
|
|
air, the feel of growing life under the snow, of sap ascending in
|
|
the trees, of buds bursting the shackles of the frost.
|
|
|
|
He cast anxious glances at his mate, but she showed no desire to get
|
|
up. He looked outside, and half a dozen snowbirds fluttered across his
|
|
field of vision. He started to get up, then looked back to his mate
|
|
again, and settled down and dozed. A shrill and minute singing stole
|
|
upon his hearing. Once, and twice, he sleepily brushed his nose with
|
|
his paw. Then he woke up. There, buzzing in the air at the tip of
|
|
his nose, was a lone mosquito. It was a full-grown mosquito, one
|
|
that had lain frozen in a dry log all winter and that had now been
|
|
thawed out by the sun. He could resist the call of the world no
|
|
longer. Besides, he was hungry.
|
|
|
|
He crawled over to his mate and tried to persuade her to get up. But
|
|
she only snarled at him, and he walked out alone into the bright
|
|
sunshine to find the snow-surface soft underfoot and the traveling
|
|
difficult. He went up the frozen bed of the stream, where the snow,
|
|
shaded by the trees, was yet hard and crystalline. He was gone eight
|
|
hours, and he came back through the darkness hungrier than when he had
|
|
started. He had found game, but he had not caught it. He had broken
|
|
through the melting snow-crust, and wallowed, while the snowshoe
|
|
rabbits had skimmed along on top lightly as ever.
|
|
|
|
He paused at the mouth of the cave with a sudden shock of suspicion.
|
|
Faint, strange sounds came from within. They were sounds not made by
|
|
his mate, and yet they were remotely familiar. He bellied cautiously
|
|
inside and was met by a warning snarl from the she-wolf. This he
|
|
received without perturbation, though he obeyed it by keeping his
|
|
distance; but he remained interested in the other sounds- faint,
|
|
muffled sobbings and slubberings.
|
|
|
|
His mate warned him irritably away, and he curled up and slept in
|
|
the entrance. When morning came and a dim light pervaded the lair,
|
|
he again sought after the source of the remotely familiar sounds.
|
|
There was a new note in his mate's warning snarl. It was a jealous
|
|
note, and he was very careful in keeping a respectful distance.
|
|
Nevertheless, he made out, sheltering between her legs against the
|
|
length of her body, five strange little bundles of life, very
|
|
feeble, very helpless, making tiny whimpering noises, with eyes that
|
|
did not open to the light. He was surprised. It was not the first time
|
|
in his long and successful life that this thing had happened. It had
|
|
happened many times, yet each time it was as fresh a surprise as
|
|
ever to him.
|
|
|
|
His mate looked at him anxiously. Every little while she emitted a
|
|
low growl, and at times, when it seemed to her he approached too near,
|
|
the growl shot up in her throat to a sharp snarl. Of her own
|
|
experience she had no memory of the thing happening; but in her
|
|
instinct, which was the experience of all the mothers of wolves, there
|
|
lurked a memory of fathers that had eaten their newborn, and
|
|
helpless progeny. It manifested itself as a fear strong within her,
|
|
that made her prevent One Eye from more closely inspecting the cubs he
|
|
had fathered.
|
|
|
|
But there was no danger. Old One Eye was feeling the urge of an
|
|
impulse, that was, in turn, an instinct that had come down to him from
|
|
all the fathers of wolves. He did not question it, nor puzzle over it.
|
|
It was there, in the fibre of his being; and it was the most natural
|
|
thing in the world that he should obey it by turning his back on his
|
|
newborn family and by trotting out and away on the meat-trail
|
|
whereby he lived.
|
|
|
|
Five or six miles from the lair, the stream divided, its forks going
|
|
off among the mountains at a right angle. Here, leading up the left
|
|
fork, he came upon a fresh track. He smelled it and found it so recent
|
|
that he crouched swiftly, and looked into the direction in which it
|
|
disappeared. Then he turned deliberately and took the right fork.
|
|
The footprint was much larger than the one his own feet made, and he
|
|
knew that in the wake of such a trail there was little meat for him.
|
|
|
|
Half a mile up the right fork, his quick ears caught the sound of
|
|
gnawing teeth. He stalked the quarry and found it to be a porcupine,
|
|
standing upright against a tree and trying his teeth on the bark.
|
|
One Eye approached carefully but hopelessly. He knew the breed, though
|
|
he had never met it so far north before; and never in his long life
|
|
had porcupine served him for a meal. But he had long since learned
|
|
that there was such a thing as Chance, or Opportunity, and he
|
|
continued to draw near. There was never any telling what might happen,
|
|
for with live things events were somehow always happening differently.
|
|
|
|
The porcupine rolled itself into a ball, radiating long, sharp
|
|
needles in all directions that defied attack. In his youth One Eye had
|
|
once sniffed too near a similar, apparently inert ball of quills,
|
|
and had the tail flick out suddenly in his face. One quill he had
|
|
carried away in his muzzle, where it had remained for weeks, a
|
|
rankling flame, until it finally worked out. So he lay down, in a
|
|
comfortable crouching position, his nose fully a foot away, and out of
|
|
the line of the tail. Thus he waited, keeping perfectly quiet. There
|
|
was no telling. Something might happen. The porcupine might unroll.
|
|
There might be opportunity for a deft and ripping thrust of paw into
|
|
the tender, unguarded belly.
|
|
|
|
But at the end of half an hour he arose, growled wrathfully at the
|
|
motionless ball, and trotted on. He had waited too often and
|
|
futilely in the past for porcupines to unroll, to waste any more time.
|
|
He continued up the right fork. The day wore long, and nothing
|
|
rewarded his hunt.
|
|
|
|
The urge of his awakened instinct of fatherhood was strong upon him.
|
|
He must find meat. In the afternoon he blundered upon a ptarmigan.
|
|
He came out of a thicket and found himself face to face with the
|
|
slow-witted bird. It was sitting on a log, not a foot beyond the end
|
|
of his nose. Each saw the other. The bird made a startled rise, but he
|
|
struck it with his paw, and smashed it down to earth, then pounced
|
|
upon it, and caught it in his teeth as it scuttled across the snow
|
|
trying to rise in the air again. As his teeth crunched through the
|
|
tender flesh and fragile bones, he began naturally to eat. Then he
|
|
remembered, and, turning on the back-track, started for home, carrying
|
|
the ptarmigan in his mouth.
|
|
|
|
A mile above the forks, running velvet-footed as was his custom, a
|
|
gliding shadow that cautiously prospected each new vista of the trail,
|
|
he came upon later imprints of the large tracks he had discovered in
|
|
the early morning. As the track led his way, he followed, prepared
|
|
to meet the maker of it at every turn of the stream.
|
|
|
|
He slid his head around a corner of rock, where began an unusually
|
|
large bend in the stream, and his quick eyes made out something that
|
|
sent him crouching swiftly down. It was the maker of the track, a
|
|
large female lynx. She was crouching as he had crouched once that day,
|
|
in front of her the tight-rolled ball of quills. If he had been a
|
|
gliding shadow before, he now became the ghost of such a shadow, as he
|
|
crept and circled around, and came up well to leeward of the silent,
|
|
motionless pair.
|
|
|
|
He lay down in the snow, depositing the ptarmigan beside him, and
|
|
with eyes peering through the needles of a low-growing spruce he
|
|
watched the play of life before him- the waiting lynx and the
|
|
waiting porcupine, each intent on life; and, such was the
|
|
curiousness of the game, the way of life for one lay in the eating
|
|
of the other, and the way of life for the other lay in being not
|
|
eaten. While old One Eye, the wolf, crouching in the covert, played
|
|
his part, too, in the game, waiting for some strange freak of
|
|
Chance, that might help him on the meat-trail which was his way of
|
|
life.
|
|
|
|
Half an hour passed, an hour; and nothing happened. The ball of
|
|
quills might have been a stone for all it moved; the lynx might have
|
|
been frozen to marble; and old One Eye might have been dead, yet all
|
|
three animals were keyed to a tenseness of living that was almost
|
|
painful, and scarcely ever would it come to them to be more alive than
|
|
they were then in their seeming petrifaction.
|
|
|
|
One Eye moved slightly and peered forth with increased eagerness.
|
|
Something was happening. The porcupine had at last decided that its
|
|
enemy had gone away. Slowly, cautiously, it was unrolling its ball
|
|
of impregnable armor. It was agitated by no tremor of anticipation.
|
|
Slowly, slowly, the bristling ball straightened out and lengthened.
|
|
One Eye, watching, felt a sudden moistness in his mouth and a drooling
|
|
of saliva, involuntary, excited by the living meat that was
|
|
spreading itself like a repast before him.
|
|
|
|
Not quite entirely had the porcupine unrolled when it discovered its
|
|
enemy. In that instant the lynx struck. The blow was like a flash of
|
|
light. The paw, with rigid claws curving like talons, shot under the
|
|
tender belly and came back with a swift ripping movement. Had the
|
|
porcupine been entirely unrolled, or had it not discovered its enemy a
|
|
fraction of a second before the blow was struck, the paw would have
|
|
escaped unscathed; but a side-flick of the tail sank sharp quills into
|
|
it as it was withdrawn.
|
|
|
|
Everything had happened at once- the blow, the counter-blow, the
|
|
squeal of agony from the porcupine, the big cat's squall of sudden
|
|
hurt and astonishment. One Eye half arose in his excitement, his
|
|
ears up, his tail straight out and quivering behind him. The lynx's
|
|
bad temper got the best of her. She sprang savagely at the thing
|
|
that had hurt her. But the porcupine, squealing and grunting, with
|
|
disrupted anatomy trying feebly to roll up into its ball-protection,
|
|
flicked out its tail again, and again the big cat squalled with hurt
|
|
and astonishment. Then she fell to backing away and sneezing, her nose
|
|
bristling with quills like a monstrous pin-cushion. She brushed her
|
|
nose with her paws, trying to dislodge the fiery darts, thrust it into
|
|
the snow, and rubbed it against twigs and branches, all the time
|
|
leaping about, ahead, sidewise, up and down, in a frenzy of pain and
|
|
fright.
|
|
|
|
She sneezed continually, and her stub of a tail was doing its best
|
|
toward lashing about by giving quick, violent jerks. She quit her
|
|
antics, and quieted down for a long minute. One Eye watched. And
|
|
even he could not repress a start and an involuntary bristling of hair
|
|
along his back when she suddenly leaped, without warning, straight
|
|
up in the air, at the same time emitting a long and most terrible
|
|
squall. Then she sprang away, up the trail, squalling with every
|
|
leap she made.
|
|
|
|
It was not until her racket had faded away in the distance and
|
|
died out that One Eye ventured forth. He walked as delicately as
|
|
though all the snow were carpeted with porcupine quills, erect and
|
|
ready to pierce the soft pads of his feet. The porcupine met his
|
|
approach with a furious squealing and a clashing of its long teeth. It
|
|
had managed to roll up in a ball again, but it was not quite the old
|
|
compact ball; its muscles were too much torn for that. It had been
|
|
ripped almost in half, and was still bleeding profusely.
|
|
|
|
One Eye scooped out mouthfuls of the blood-soaked snow, and chewed
|
|
and tasted and swallowed. This served as a relish, and his hunger
|
|
increased mightily; but he was too old in the world to forget his
|
|
caution. He waited. He lay down and waited, while the porcupine grated
|
|
its teeth and uttered grunts and sobs and occasional sharp little
|
|
squeals. In a little while, One Eye noticed that the quills were
|
|
drooping and that a great quivering had set up. The quivering came
|
|
to an end suddenly. There was a final clash of the long teeth. Then
|
|
all the quills drooped quite down, and the body relaxed and moved no
|
|
more.
|
|
|
|
With a nervous, shrinking paw, One Eye stretched out the porcupine
|
|
to its full length and turned it over on its back. Nothing had
|
|
happened. It was surely dead. He studied it intently for a moment,
|
|
then took a careful grip with his teeth and started off down the
|
|
stream, partly carrying, partly dragging the porcupine, with head
|
|
turned to the side so as to avoid stepping on the prickly mass. He
|
|
recollected something, dropped the burden, and trotted back to where
|
|
he had left the ptarmigan. He did not hesitate a moment. He knew
|
|
clearly what was to be done, and this he did by promptly eating the
|
|
ptarmigan. Then he returned and took up his burden.
|
|
|
|
When he dragged the result of his day's hunt into the cave, the
|
|
she-wolf inspected it, turned her muzzle to him, and lightly licked
|
|
him on the neck. But the next instant she was warning him away from
|
|
the cubs with a snarl that was less harsh than usual and that was more
|
|
apologetic than menacing. Her instinctive fear of the father of her
|
|
progeny was toning down. He was behaving as a wolf father should,
|
|
and manifesting no unholy desire to devour the young lives she had
|
|
brought into the world.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER THREE.
|
|
|
|
The Gray Cub.
|
|
|
|
HE WAS DIFFERENT FROM his brothers and sisters. Their hair already
|
|
betrayed the reddish hue inherited from their mother, the she-wolf;
|
|
while he alone, in this particular, took after his father. He was
|
|
the one little gray cub of the litter. He had bred true to the
|
|
straight wolf-stock- in fact, he had bred true, physically, to old One
|
|
Eye himself, with but a single exception, and that was that he had two
|
|
eyes to his father's one.
|
|
|
|
The gray cub's eyes had not been open long, yet already he could see
|
|
with steady clearness. And while his eyes were still closed, he had
|
|
felt, tasted, and smelled. He knew his two brothers and his two
|
|
sisters very well. He had begun to romp with them in a feeble, awkward
|
|
way, and even to squabble, his little throat vibrating with a queer
|
|
rasping noise (the forerunner of the growl), as he worked himself into
|
|
a passion. And long before his eyes had opened, he had learned by
|
|
touch, taste, and smell to know his mother- a fount of warmth and
|
|
liquid food and tenderness. She possessed a gentle, caressing tongue
|
|
that soothed him when it passed over his soft little body, and that
|
|
impelled him to snuggle close against her and to doze off to sleep.
|
|
|
|
Most of the first month of his life had been passed thus in
|
|
sleeping; but now he could see quite well, and he stayed awake for
|
|
longer periods of time, and he was coming to learn his world quite
|
|
well. His world was gloomy; but he did not know that, for he knew no
|
|
other world. It was dim-lighted; but his eyes had never had to
|
|
adjust themselves to any other light. His world was very small. Its
|
|
limits were the walls of the lair; but as he had no knowledge of the
|
|
wide world outside, he was never oppressed by the narrow confines of
|
|
his existence.
|
|
|
|
But he had early discovered that one wall of his world was different
|
|
from the rest. This was the mouth of the cave and the source of light.
|
|
He had discovered that it was different from the other walls long
|
|
before he had any thoughts of his own, any conscious volitions. It had
|
|
been an irresistible attraction before even his eyes opened and looked
|
|
upon it. The light from it had beat upon his sealed lids, and the eyes
|
|
and the optic nerves had pulsated to little, spark-like flashes,
|
|
warm-colored and strangely pleasing. The life of his body, and of
|
|
every fibre of his body, the life that was the very substance of his
|
|
body and that was apart from his own personal life, had yearned toward
|
|
this light and urged his body toward it in the same way that the
|
|
cunning chemistry of a plant urges it toward the sun.
|
|
|
|
Always, in the beginning, before his conscious life dawned, he had
|
|
crawled toward the mouth of the cave. And in this his brothers and
|
|
sisters were one with him. Never, in that period, did any of them
|
|
crawl toward the dark corners of the backwall. The light drew them
|
|
as if they were plants; the chemistry of the life that composed them
|
|
demanded the light as a necessity of being; and their little
|
|
puppet-bodies crawled blindly and chemically, like the tendrils of a
|
|
vine. Later on, when each developed individuality and became
|
|
personally conscious of impulsions and desires, the attraction of
|
|
the light increased. They were always crawling and sprawling toward
|
|
it, and being driven back from it by their mother.
|
|
|
|
It was in this way that the gray cub learned other attributes of his
|
|
mother than the soft, soothing tongue. In his insistent crawling
|
|
toward the light, he discovered in her a nose that with a sharp
|
|
nudge administered rebuke, and later, a paw, that crushed him down
|
|
or rolled him over and over with swift, calculating stroke. Thus he
|
|
learned hurt; and on top of it he learned to avoid hurt, first, by not
|
|
incurring the risk of it; and second, when he had incurred the risk,
|
|
by dodging and by retreating. These were conscious actions, and were
|
|
the results of his first generalizations upon the world. Before that
|
|
he had recoiled automatically from hurt, as he had crawled
|
|
automatically toward the light. After that he recoiled from hurt
|
|
because he knew that it was hurt.
|
|
|
|
He was a fierce little cub. So were his brothers and sisters. It was
|
|
to be expected. He was a carnivorous animal. He came of a breed of
|
|
meat-killers and meat-eaters. His father and mother lived wholly
|
|
upon meat. The milk he had sucked with his first flickering life was
|
|
milk transformed directly from meat, and now, at a month old, when his
|
|
eyes had been open for but a week, he was beginning himself to eat
|
|
meat- meat half-digested by the she-wolf and disgorged for the five
|
|
growing cubs that already made too great demand upon her breast.
|
|
|
|
But he was, further, the fiercest of the litter. He could make a
|
|
louder rasping growl than any of them. His tiny rages were much more
|
|
terrible than theirs. It was he that first learned the trick of
|
|
rolling a fellow-cub over with a cunning paw-stroke. And it was he
|
|
that first gripped another cub by the ear and pulled and tugged and
|
|
growled through jaws tight-clenched. And certainly it was he that
|
|
caused the mother the most trouble in keeping her litter from the
|
|
mouth of the cave.
|
|
|
|
The fascination of the light for the gray cub increased from day
|
|
to day. He was perpetually departing on yard-long adventures toward
|
|
the cave's entrance, and was perpetually being driven back. Only he
|
|
did not know it for an entrance. He did not know anything about
|
|
entrances- passages whereby one goes from one place to another
|
|
place. He did not know any other place, much less of a way to get
|
|
there. So to him the entrance of the cave was a wall- a wall of light.
|
|
As the sun was to the outside dweller, this wall was to him the sun of
|
|
his world. It attracted him as a candle attracts a moth. He was always
|
|
striving to attain it. The life that was so swiftly expanding within
|
|
him, urged him continually toward the wall of light. The life that was
|
|
within him knew that it was the one way out, the way he was
|
|
predestined to tread. But he himself did not know anything about it.
|
|
He did not know there was any outside at all.
|
|
|
|
There was one strange thing about this wall of light. His father (he
|
|
had already come to recognize his father as the one other dweller in
|
|
the world, a creature like his mother, who slept near the light and
|
|
was a bringer of meat)- his father had a way of walking right into the
|
|
white far wall and disappearing. The gray cub could not understand
|
|
this. Though never permitted by his mother to approach that wall, he
|
|
had approached the other walls, and encountered hard obstruction on
|
|
the end of his tender nose. This hurt. And after several such
|
|
adventures, he left the walls alone. Without thinking about it, he
|
|
accepted this disappearing into the wall as a peculiarity of his
|
|
father, as milk and half-digested meat were peculiarities of his
|
|
mother.
|
|
|
|
In fact, the gray cub was not given to thinking- at least, to the
|
|
kind of thinking customary of men. His brain worked in dim ways. Yet
|
|
his conclusions were as sharp and distinct as those achieved by men.
|
|
He had a method of accepting things, without questioning the why and
|
|
wherefore. In reality, this was the act of classification. He was
|
|
never disturbed over why a thing happened. How it happened was
|
|
sufficient for him. Thus, when he had bumped his nose on the
|
|
backwall a few times he accepted that he would not disappear into
|
|
walls. In the same way he accepted that his father could disappear
|
|
into walls. But he was not in the least disturbed by desire to find
|
|
out the reason for the difference between his father and himself.
|
|
Logic and physics were no part of his mental make-up.
|
|
|
|
Like most creatures of the Wild, he early experienced famine.
|
|
There came a time when not only did the meat-supply cease, but the
|
|
milk no longer came from his mother's breast. At first, the cubs
|
|
whimpered and cried, but for the most part they slept. It was not long
|
|
before they were reduced to a coma of hunger. There were no more spats
|
|
and squabbles, no more tiny rages nor attempts at growling; while
|
|
the adventures toward the far white wall ceased altogether. The cubs
|
|
slept, while the life that was in them flickered and died down.
|
|
|
|
One Eye was desperate. He ranged far and wide, and slept but
|
|
little in the lair that had now become cheerless and miserable. The
|
|
she-wolf, too, left her litter and went out in search of meat. In
|
|
the first days after the birth of the cubs, One Eye had journeyed
|
|
several times back to the Indian camp and robbed the rabbit snares;
|
|
but, with the melting of the snow and the opening of the streams,
|
|
the Indian camp had moved away, and that source of supply was closed
|
|
to him.
|
|
|
|
When the gray cub came back to life and again took interest in the
|
|
far white wall, he found that the population of his world had been
|
|
reduced. Only one sister remained to him. The rest were gone. As he
|
|
grew stronger, he found himself compelled to play alone, for the
|
|
sister no longer lifted her head nor moved about. His little body
|
|
rounded out with the meat he now ate; but the food had come too late
|
|
for her. She slept continuously, a tiny skeleton flung round with skin
|
|
in which the flame flickered lower and lower and at last went out.
|
|
|
|
Then there came a time when the gray cub no longer saw his father
|
|
appearing and disappearing in the wall nor lying down asleep in the
|
|
entrance. This had happened at the end of a second and less severe
|
|
famine. The she-wolf knew why One Eye never came back, but there was
|
|
no way by which she could tell what she had seen to the gray cub.
|
|
Hunting herself for meat, up the left fork of the stream where lived
|
|
the lynx, she had followed a day-old trail of One Eye. And she had
|
|
found him, or what remained of him, at the end of the trail. There
|
|
were many signs of the battle that had been fought, and of the
|
|
lynx's withdrawal to her lair after having won the victory. Before she
|
|
went away, the she-wolf had found this lair, but the signs told her
|
|
that the lynx was inside, and she had not dared to venture in.
|
|
|
|
After that, the she-wolf in her hunting avoided the left fork. For
|
|
she knew that in the lynx's lair was a litter of kittens, and she knew
|
|
the lynx for a fierce, bad-tempered creature and a terrible fighter.
|
|
It was all very well for half a dozen wolves to drive a lynx, spitting
|
|
and bristling, up a tree; but it was quite a different matter for a
|
|
lone wolf to encounter a lynx- especially when the lynx was known to
|
|
have a litter of hungry kittens at her back.
|
|
|
|
But the Wild is the Wild, and motherhood is motherhood, at all times
|
|
fiercely protective whether in the Wild or out of it; and the time was
|
|
to come when the she-wolf, for her gray cub's sake, would venture
|
|
the left fork, and the lair in the rocks, and the lynx's wrath.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER FOUR.
|
|
|
|
The Wall of the World.
|
|
|
|
BY THE TIME HIS MOTHER began leaving the cave on hunting
|
|
expeditions, the cub had learned well the law that forbade his
|
|
approaching the entrance. Not only had this law been forcibly and many
|
|
times impressed on him by his mother's nose and paw, but in him the
|
|
instinct of fear was developing. Never, in his brief cave-life, had he
|
|
encountered anything of which to be afraid. Yet fear was in him. It
|
|
had come down to him from a remote ancestry through a thousand
|
|
thousand lives. It was a heritage he had received directly from One
|
|
Eye and the she-wolf; but to them, in turn, it had been passed down
|
|
through all the generations of wolves that had gone before. Fear!-
|
|
that legacy of the Wild which no animal may escape nor exchange for
|
|
pottage.
|
|
|
|
So the gray cub knew fear, though he knew not the stuff of which
|
|
fear was made. Possibly he accepted it as one of the restrictions of
|
|
life. For he had already learned that there were such restrictions.
|
|
Hunger he had known; and when he could not appease his hunger he had
|
|
felt restriction. The hard obstruction of the cave-wall, the sharp
|
|
nudge of his mother's nose, the smashing stroke of her paw, the hunger
|
|
unappeased of several famines, had borne in upon him that all was
|
|
not freedom in the world, that to life there were limitations and
|
|
restraints. These limitations and restraints were law. To be
|
|
obedient to them was to escape hurt and make for happiness.
|
|
|
|
He did not reason the question out in this man-fashion. He merely
|
|
classified the things that hurt and the things that did not hurt.
|
|
And after such classification he avoided the things that hurt, the
|
|
restrictions and restraints, in order to enjoy the satisfactions and
|
|
the remunerations of life.
|
|
|
|
Thus it was that in obedience to the law laid down by his mother,
|
|
and in obedience to the law of that unknown and nameless thing,
|
|
fear, he kept away from the mouth of the cave. It remained to him a
|
|
white wall of light. When his mother was absent, he slept most of
|
|
the time, while during the intervals that he was awake he kept very
|
|
quiet, suppressing the whimpering cries that tickled in his throat and
|
|
strove for noise.
|
|
|
|
Once, lying awake, he heard a strange sound in the white wall. He
|
|
did not know that it was a wolverine, standing outside, all
|
|
a-tremble with its own daring, and cautiously scenting out the
|
|
contents of the cave. The cub knew only that the sniff was strange,
|
|
a something unclassified, therefore unknown and terrible- for the
|
|
unknown was one of the chief elements that went into the making of
|
|
fear.
|
|
|
|
The hair bristled up on the gray cub's back, but it bristled
|
|
silently. How was he to know that this thing that sniffed was a
|
|
thing at which to bristle? It was not born of any knowledge of his,
|
|
yet it was the visible expression of the fear that was in him, and for
|
|
which, in his own life, there was no accounting. But fear was
|
|
accompanied by another instinct- that of concealment. The cub was in a
|
|
frenzy of terror, yet he lay without movement or sound, frozen,
|
|
petrified into immobility, to all appearances dead. His mother, coming
|
|
home, growled as she smelt the wolverine's track, and bounded into the
|
|
cave and licked and nozzled him with undue vehemence of affection. And
|
|
the cub felt that somehow he had escaped a great hurt.
|
|
|
|
But there were other forces at work in the cub, the greatest of
|
|
which was growth. Instinct and law demanded of him obedience. But
|
|
growth demanded disobedience. His mother and fear impelled him to keep
|
|
away from the white wall. Growth is life, and life is forever destined
|
|
to make for light. So there was no damming up the tide of life that
|
|
was rising within him- rising with every mouthful of meat he
|
|
swallowed, with every breath he drew. In the end, one day, fear and
|
|
obedience were swept away by the rush of life, and the cub straddled
|
|
and sprawled toward the entrance.
|
|
|
|
Unlike any other wall with which he had had experience, this wall
|
|
seemed to recede from him as he approached. No hard surface collided
|
|
with the tender little nose he thrust out tentatively before him.
|
|
The substance of the wall seemed as permeable and yielding as light.
|
|
And as condition, in his eyes, had the seeming of form, so he
|
|
entered into what had been wall to him and bathed in the substance
|
|
that composed it.
|
|
|
|
It was bewildering. He was sprawling through solidity. And ever
|
|
the light grew brighter. Fear urged him to go back, but growth drove
|
|
him on. Suddenly he found himself at the mouth of the cave. The
|
|
wall, inside which he had thought himself, as suddenly leaped back
|
|
before him to an immeasurable distance. The light had become painfully
|
|
bright. He was dazzled by it. Likewise he was made dizzy by this
|
|
abrupt and tremendous extension of space. Automatically, his eyes were
|
|
adjusting themselves to the brightness, focusing themselves to meet
|
|
the increased distance of objects. At first, the wall had leaped
|
|
beyond his vision. He now saw it again; but it had taken upon itself a
|
|
remarkable remoteness. Also, its appearance had changed. It was now
|
|
a variegated wall, composed of the trees that fringed the stream,
|
|
the opposing mountain that towered above the trees, and the sky that
|
|
out-towered the mountain.
|
|
|
|
A great fear came upon him. This was more of the terrible unknown.
|
|
He crouched down on the lip of the cave and gazed out on the world. He
|
|
was very much afraid. Because it was unknown, it was hostile to him.
|
|
Therefore the hair stood up on end along his back and his lips
|
|
wrinkled weakly in an attempt at a ferocious and intimidating snarl.
|
|
Out of his puniness and fright he challenged and menaced the whole
|
|
wide world.
|
|
|
|
Nothing happened. He continued to gaze, and in his interest he
|
|
forgot to snarl. Also, he forgot to be afraid. For the time, fear
|
|
had been routed by growth, while growth had assumed the guise of
|
|
curiosity. He began to notice near objects- an open portion of the
|
|
stream that flashed in the sun, the blasted pine tree that stood at
|
|
the base of the slope, and the slope itself, that ran right up to
|
|
him and ceased two feet beneath the lip of the cave on which he
|
|
crouched.
|
|
|
|
Now the gray cub had lived all his days on a level floor. He had
|
|
never experienced the hurt of a fall. He did not know what a fall was.
|
|
So he stepped boldly out upon the air. His hind-legs still rested on
|
|
the cave-lip, so he fell forward head downward. The earth struck him a
|
|
harsh blow on the nose that made him yelp. Then he began rolling
|
|
down the slope, over and over. He was in a panic of terror. The
|
|
unknown had caught him at last. It had gripped savagely hold of him
|
|
and was about to wreak upon him some terrific hurt. Growth was now
|
|
routed by fear, and he ki-yi'd like any frightened puppy.
|
|
|
|
The unknown bore him on he knew not to what frightful hurt, and he
|
|
yelped and ki-yi'd unceasingly. This was a different proposition
|
|
from crouching in frozen fear while the unknown lurked just alongside.
|
|
Now the unknown had caught tight hold of him. Silence would do no
|
|
good. Besides, it was not fear, but terror, that convulsed him.
|
|
|
|
But the slope grew more gradual, and its base was grass-covered.
|
|
Here the cub lost momentum. When at last he came to a stop, he gave
|
|
one last agonized yelp and then a long, whimpering wail. Also, and
|
|
quite as a matter of course, as though in his life he had already made
|
|
a thousand toilets, he proceeded to lick away that dry clay that
|
|
soiled him.
|
|
|
|
After that he sat up and gazed about him, as might the first man
|
|
of the earth who landed upon Mars. The cub had broken through the wall
|
|
of the world, the unknown had let go its hold of him, and here he
|
|
was without hurt. But the first man on Mars would have experienced
|
|
less unfamiliarity that did he. Without any antecedent knowledge,
|
|
without any warning whatever that such existed, he found himself an
|
|
explorer in a totally new world.
|
|
|
|
Now that the terrible unknown had let go of him, he forgot that
|
|
the unknown had any terrors. He was aware only of curiosity in all the
|
|
things about him. He inspected the grass beneath him, the mossberry
|
|
plant just beyond, and the dead trunk of the blasted pine that stood
|
|
on the edge of an open space among the trees. A squirrel, running
|
|
around the base of the trunk, came full upon him, and gave him a great
|
|
fright. He cowered down and snarled. But the squirrel was as badly
|
|
scared. It ran up the tree, and from a point of safety chattered
|
|
back savagely.
|
|
|
|
This helped the cub's courage, and though the woodpecker he next
|
|
encountered gave him a start, he proceeded confidently on his way.
|
|
Such was his confidence, that when a moose-bird impudently hopped up
|
|
to him, he reached out at it with a playful paw. The result was a
|
|
sharp peck on the end of his nose that made him cower down and
|
|
ki-yi. The noise he made was too much for the moose-bird, who sought
|
|
safety in flight.
|
|
|
|
But the cub was learning. His misty little mind had already made
|
|
an unconscious classification. There were live things and things not
|
|
alive. Also, he must watch out for the live things. The things not
|
|
alive remained always in one place; but the live things moved about,
|
|
and there was no telling what they might do. The thing to expect of
|
|
them was the unexpected, and for this he must be prepared.
|
|
|
|
He traveled very clumsily. He ran into sticks and things. A twig
|
|
that he thought a long way off would the next instant hit him on the
|
|
nose or rake along his ribs. There were inequalities of surface.
|
|
Sometimes he overstepped and stubbed his nose. Quite as often he
|
|
under-stepped and stubbed his feet. Then there were pebbles and stones
|
|
that turned under him when he trod upon them; and from them he came to
|
|
know that the things not alive were not all in the same state of
|
|
stable equilibrium as was his cave; also, that small things not
|
|
alive were more liable than large things to fall down or turn over.
|
|
But with every mishap he was learning. The longer he walked, the
|
|
better he walked. He was adjusting himself. He was learning to
|
|
calculate his own muscular movements, to know his physical
|
|
limitations, to measure distances between objects, and between objects
|
|
and himself.
|
|
|
|
His was the luck of the beginner. Born to be a hunter of meat
|
|
(though he did not know it), he blundered upon meat just outside his
|
|
own cave-door on his first foray into the world. It was by sheer
|
|
blundering that he chanced upon the shrewdly hidden ptarmigan nest. He
|
|
fell into it. He had essayed to walk along the trunk of a fallen pine.
|
|
The rotten bark gave way under his feet, and with a despairing yelp he
|
|
pitched down the rounded descent, smashed through the leafage and
|
|
stalks of a small bush, and in the heart of the bush, on the ground,
|
|
fetched up amongst seven ptarmigan chicks.
|
|
|
|
They made noises, and at first he was frightened at them. Then he
|
|
perceived that they were very little, and he became bolder. They
|
|
moved. He placed his paw on one, and its movements were accelerated.
|
|
This was a source of enjoyment to him. He smelled it. He picked it
|
|
up in his mouth. It struggled and tickled his tongue. At the same time
|
|
he was made aware of a sensation of hunger. His jaws closed
|
|
together. There was a crunching of fragile bones, and warm blood ran
|
|
in his mouth. The taste of it was good. This was meat, the same as his
|
|
mother gave him, only it was alive between his teeth and therefore
|
|
better. So he ate the ptarmigan. Nor did he stop till he had
|
|
devoured the whole brood. Then he licked his chops in quite the same
|
|
way his mother did, and began to crawl out of the bush.
|
|
|
|
He encountered a feathered whirlwind. He was confused and blinded by
|
|
the rush of it and the beat of angry wings. He hid his head between
|
|
his paws and yelped. The blows increased. The mother-ptarmigan was
|
|
in a fury. Then he became angry. He rose up, snarling, striking out
|
|
with his paws. He sank his tiny teeth into one of the wings and pulled
|
|
and tugged sturdily. The ptarmigan struggled against him, showering
|
|
blows upon him with her free wing. It was his first battle. He was
|
|
elated. He forgot all about the unknown. He no longer was afraid of
|
|
anything. He was fighting, tearing at a living thing that was striking
|
|
at him. Also, this live thing was meat. The lust to kill was on him.
|
|
He had just destroyed little live things. He would now destroy a big
|
|
live thing. He was too busy and happy to know that he was happy. He
|
|
was thrilling and exulting in ways new to him and greater to him
|
|
than any he had known before.
|
|
|
|
He held on to the wing and growled between his tight-clenched teeth.
|
|
The ptarmigan dragged him out of the bush. When she turned and tried
|
|
to drag him back into the bush's shelter, he pulled her away from it
|
|
and on into the open. And all the time she was making outcry and
|
|
striking with her wing, while feathers were flying like a snowfall.
|
|
The pitch to which he was aroused was tremendous. All the fighting
|
|
blood of his breed was up in him and surging through him. This was
|
|
living, though he did not know it. He was realizing his own meaning in
|
|
the world; he was doing that for which he was made- killing meat and
|
|
battling to kill it. He was justifying his existence, than which
|
|
life can do no greater; for life achieves its summit when it does to
|
|
the uttermost that which it was equipped to do.
|
|
|
|
After a time, the ptarmigan ceased her struggling. He still held her
|
|
by the wing, and they lay on the ground and looked at each other. He
|
|
tried to growl threateningly, ferociously. She pecked on his nose,
|
|
which by now, what of previous adventures, was sore. He winced but
|
|
held on. She pecked him again and again. From wincing he went to
|
|
whimpering. He tried to back away from her, oblivious of the fact that
|
|
by his hold on her he dragged her after him. A rain of pecks fell on
|
|
his ill-used nose. The flood of fight ebbed down in him, and,
|
|
releasing his prey, he turned tail and scampered off across the open
|
|
in inglorious retreat.
|
|
|
|
He lay down to rest on the other side of the open, near the edge
|
|
of the bushes, his tongue lolling out, his chest heaving and
|
|
panting, his nose still hurting him and causing him to continue his
|
|
whimper. But as he lay there, suddenly there came to him a feeling
|
|
as of something terrible impending. The unknown with all its terrors
|
|
rushed upon him, and he shrank back instinctively into the shelter
|
|
of the bush. As he did so, a draught of air fanned him, and a large,
|
|
winged body swept ominously and silently past. A hawk, driving down
|
|
out of the blue, had barely missed him.
|
|
|
|
While he lay in the bush, recovering from this fright and peering
|
|
fearfully out, the mother-ptarmigan on the other side of the open
|
|
space fluttered out of the ravaged nest. It was because of her loss
|
|
that she paid no attention to the winged bolt of the sky. But the
|
|
cub saw, and it was a warning and a lesson to him- the swift
|
|
downward swoop of the hawk, the short skim of its body just above
|
|
the ground, the strike of its talons in the body of the ptarmigan, the
|
|
ptarmigan's squawk of agony and fright, and the hawk's rush upward
|
|
into the blue, carrying the ptarmigan away with it.
|
|
|
|
It was a long time before the cub left his shelter. He had learned
|
|
much. Live things were meat. They were good to eat. Also, live
|
|
things when they were large enough, could give hurt. It was better
|
|
to eat small live things like ptarmigan chicks, and to let alone
|
|
live things like ptarmigan hens. Nevertheless he felt a little prick
|
|
of ambition, a sneaking desire to have another battle with that
|
|
ptarmigan hen- only the hawk had carried her away. Maybe there were
|
|
other ptarmigan hens. He would go and see.
|
|
|
|
He came down a shelving bank to the stream. He had never seen
|
|
water before. The footing looked good. There were no inequalities of
|
|
surface. He stepped boldly out on it; and went down, crying with fear,
|
|
into the embrace of the unknown. It was cold, and he gasped, breathing
|
|
quickly. The water rushed into his lungs instead of the air that had
|
|
always accompanied his act of breathing. The suffocation he
|
|
experienced was like the pang of death. To him it signified death.
|
|
He had no conscious knowledge of death, but like every animal of the
|
|
Wild, he possessed the instinct of death. To him it stood as the
|
|
greatest of hurts. It was the very essence of the unknown; it was
|
|
the sum of the terrors of the unknown, the one culminating and
|
|
unthinkable catastrophe that could happen to him, about which he
|
|
knew nothing and about which he feared everything.
|
|
|
|
He came to the surface, and the sweet air rushed into his open
|
|
mouth. He did not go down again. Quite as though it had been a
|
|
long-established custom of his, he struck out with all his legs and
|
|
began to swim. The near bank was a yard away; but he had come up
|
|
with his back to it, and the first thing his eyes rested upon was
|
|
the opposite bank, toward which he immediately began to swim. The
|
|
stream was a small one, but in the pool it widened out to a score of
|
|
feet.
|
|
|
|
Midway in the passage, the current picked up the cub and swept him
|
|
downstream. He was caught in the miniature rapid at the bottom of
|
|
the pool. Here was little chance for swimming. The quiet water had
|
|
become suddenly angry. Sometimes he was under, sometimes on top. At
|
|
all times he was in violent motion, now being turned over or around,
|
|
and again, being smashed against a rock. And with every rock he
|
|
struck, he yelped. His progress was a series of yelps, from which
|
|
might had been adduced the number of rocks he encountered.
|
|
|
|
Below the rapid was a second pool, and here, captured by the eddy,
|
|
he was gently borne to the bank and as gently deposited on a bed of
|
|
gravel. He crawled frantically clear of the water and lay down. He had
|
|
learned some more about the world. Water was not alive. Yet it
|
|
moved. Also, it looked as solid as the earth, but was without any
|
|
solidity at all. His conclusion was that things were not always what
|
|
they appeared to be. The cub's fear of the unknown was an inherited
|
|
distrust, and it had now been strengthened by experience. Thenceforth,
|
|
in the nature of things, he would possess an abiding distrust of
|
|
appearances. He would have to learn the reality of a thing before he
|
|
could put his faith into it.
|
|
|
|
One other adventure was destined for him that day. He had
|
|
recollected that there was such a thing in the world as his mother.
|
|
And then there came to him a feeling that he wanted her more than
|
|
all the rest of the things in the world. Not only was his body tired
|
|
with the adventures it had undergone, but his little brain was equally
|
|
tired. In all the days he had lived it had not worked so hard as on
|
|
this one day. Furthermore, he was sleepy. So he started out to look
|
|
for the cave and his mother, feeling at the same time an
|
|
overwhelming rush of loneliness and helplessness.
|
|
|
|
He was sprawling along between some bushes, when he heard a sharp,
|
|
intimidating cry. There was a flash of yellow before his eyes. He
|
|
saw a weasel leaping swiftly away from him. It was a small thing,
|
|
and he had no fear. Then, before him, at his feet, he saw an extremely
|
|
small live thing, only several inches long- a young weasel, that, like
|
|
himself, had disobediently gone out adventuring. It tried to retreat
|
|
before him. He turned it over with his paw. It made a queer, grating
|
|
noise. The next moment the flash of yellow reappeared before his eyes.
|
|
He heard again the intimidating cry, and at the same instant
|
|
received a severe blow on the side of the neck and felt the sharp
|
|
teeth of the mother-weasel cut into his flesh.
|
|
|
|
While he yelped and ki-yi'd and scrambled backward, he saw the
|
|
mother-weasel leap upon her young one and disappear with it into the
|
|
neighboring thicket. The cut of her teeth in his neck still hurt,
|
|
but his feelings were hurt more grievously, and he sat down and weakly
|
|
whimpered. This mother-weasel was so small and so savage! He was yet
|
|
to learn that for size and weight, the weasel was the most
|
|
ferocious, vindictive, and terrible of all the killers of the Wild.
|
|
But a portion of this knowledge was quickly to be his.
|
|
|
|
He was still whimpering when the mother-weasel reappeared. She did
|
|
not rush him, now that her young one was safe. She approached more
|
|
cautiously, and the cub had full opportunity to observe her lean,
|
|
snakelike body, and her head, erect, eager, and snakelike itself.
|
|
Her sharp, menacing cry sent the hair bristling along his back, and he
|
|
snarled warningly at her. She came closer and closer. There was a
|
|
leap, swifter than his unpracticed sight, and the lean, yellow body
|
|
disappeared for a moment out of the field of his vision. The next
|
|
moment she was at his throat, her teeth buried in his hair and flesh.
|
|
|
|
At first he snarled and tried to fight; but he was very young, and
|
|
this was only his first day in the world, and his snarl became a
|
|
whimper, his fight a struggle to escape. The weasel never relaxed
|
|
her hold. She hung on, striving to press down with her teeth to the
|
|
great vein where his life-blood bubbled. The weasel was a drinker of
|
|
blood, and it was ever her preference to drink from the throat of life
|
|
itself.
|
|
|
|
The gray cub would have died, and there would have been no story
|
|
to write about him, had not the she-wolf come bounding through the
|
|
bushes. The weasel let go the cub and flashed at the she-wolf's
|
|
throat, missing, but getting a hold on the jaw instead. Then the
|
|
she-wolf flirted her head like the snap of a whip, breaking the
|
|
weasel's hold and flinging it high in the air. And, still in the
|
|
air, the she-wolf's jaws closed on the lean, yellow body, and the
|
|
weasel knew death between the crunching teeth.
|
|
|
|
The cub experienced another access of affection on the part of his
|
|
mother. Her joy at finding him seemed greater even than his joy at
|
|
being found. She nozzled him and caressed him and licked the cuts made
|
|
in him by the weasel's teeth. Then, between them, mother and cub, they
|
|
ate the blood-drinker, and after that went back to the cave and slept.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER FIVE.
|
|
|
|
The Law of Meat.
|
|
|
|
THE CUB'S DEVELOPMENT was rapid. He rested for two days, and then
|
|
ventured forth from the cave again. It was on this adventure that he
|
|
found the young weasel whose mother he had helped to eat, and he saw
|
|
to it that the young weasel went the way of its mother. But on this
|
|
trip he did not get lost. When he grew tired, he found his way back to
|
|
the cave and slept. And every day thereafter found him out and ranging
|
|
a wider area.
|
|
|
|
He began to get an accurate measurement of his strength and his
|
|
weakness, and to know when to be bold and when to be cautious. He
|
|
found it expedient to be cautious all the time, except for the rare
|
|
moments, when, assured of his own intrepidity, he abandoned himself to
|
|
petty rages and lusts.
|
|
|
|
He was always a little demon of fury when he chanced upon a stray
|
|
ptarmigan. Never did he fail to respond savagely to the clatter of the
|
|
squirrel he had first met on the blasted pine. While the sight of a
|
|
moose-bird almost invariably put him into the wildest of rages; for he
|
|
never forgot the peck on the nose he had received from the first of
|
|
that ilk he encountered.
|
|
|
|
But there were times when even a moose-bird failed to affect him,
|
|
and those were times when he felt himself to be in danger from some
|
|
other prowling meat-hunter. He never forgot the hawk, and its moving
|
|
shadow always sent him crouching into the nearest thicket. He no
|
|
longer sprawled and straddled, and already he was developing the
|
|
gait of his mother, slinking and furtive, apparently without exertion,
|
|
yet sliding along with a swiftness that was as deceptive as it was
|
|
imperceptible.
|
|
|
|
In the matter of meat, his luck had been all in the beginning. The
|
|
seven ptarmigan chicks and the baby weasel represented the sum of
|
|
his killings. His desire to kill strengthened with the days, and he
|
|
cherished hungry ambitions for the squirrel that chattered so
|
|
volubly and always informed all wild creatures that the wolf-cub was
|
|
approaching. But as birds flew in the air, squirrels could climb
|
|
trees, and the cub could only try to crawl unobserved upon the
|
|
squirrel when it was on the ground.
|
|
|
|
The cub entertained a great respect for his mother. She could get
|
|
meat, and she never failed to bring him his share. Further, she was
|
|
unafraid of things. It did not occur to him that this fearlessness was
|
|
founded upon experience and knowledge. Its effect on him was that of
|
|
an impression of power. His mother represented power; and as he grew
|
|
older he felt this power in the sharper admonition of her paw; while
|
|
the reproving nudge of her nose gave place to the slash of her
|
|
fangs. For this, likewise, he respected his mother. She compelled
|
|
obedience from him, and the older he grew the shorter grew her temper.
|
|
|
|
Famine came again, and the cub with clearer consciousness knew
|
|
once more the bite of hunger. The she-wolf ran herself thin in the
|
|
quest for meat. She rarely slept any more in the cave, spending most
|
|
of her time on the meat-trail and spending it vainly. This famine
|
|
was not a long one, but it was severe while it lasted. The cub found
|
|
no more milk in his mother's breast, nor did he get one mouthful of
|
|
meat for himself.
|
|
|
|
Before, he had hunted in play, for the sheer joyousness of it; now
|
|
he hunted in deadly earnestness, and found nothing. Yet the failure of
|
|
it accelerated his development. He studied the habits of the
|
|
squirrel with great carefulness, and strove with greater craft to
|
|
steal upon it and surprise it. He studied the woodmice and tried to
|
|
dig them out of their burrows; and he learned much about the ways of
|
|
moose-birds and woodpeckers. And there came a day when the hawk's
|
|
shadow did not drive him crouching into the bushes. He had grown
|
|
stronger, and wiser, and more confident. Also, he was desperate. So he
|
|
sat on his haunches, conspicuously, in an open space, and challenged
|
|
the hawk down out of the sky. For he knew that there, floating in
|
|
the blue above him, was meat, the meat his stomach yearned after so
|
|
insistently. But the hawk refused to come down and give battle, and
|
|
the cub crawled away into a thicket and whimpered his disappointment
|
|
and hunger.
|
|
|
|
The famine broke. The she-wolf brought home meat. It was strange
|
|
meat, different from any she had ever brought before. It was a lynx
|
|
kitten, partly grown, like the cub, but not so large. And it was all
|
|
for him. His mother had satisfied her hunger elsewhere; though he
|
|
did not know that it was the rest of the lynx litter that had gone
|
|
to satisfy her. Nor did he know the desperateness of her deed. He knew
|
|
only that the velvet-furred kitten was meat, and he ate and waxed
|
|
happier with every mouthful.
|
|
|
|
A full stomach conduces to inaction, and the cub lay in the cave,
|
|
sleeping against his mother's side. He was aroused by her snarling.
|
|
Never had he heard her snarl so terribly. Possibly in her whole life
|
|
it was the most terrible snarl she ever gave. There was a reason for
|
|
it, and none knew it better than she. A lynx's lair is not despoiled
|
|
with impunity. In the full glare of the afternoon light, crouching
|
|
in the entrance of the cave, the cub saw the lynx-mother. The hair
|
|
rippled up all along his back at the sight. Here was fear, and it
|
|
did not require his instinct to tell him of it. And if sight alone
|
|
were not sufficient, the cry of rage the intruder gave, beginning with
|
|
a snarl and rushing abruptly upward into a hoarse screech, was
|
|
convincing enough in itself.
|
|
|
|
The cub felt the prod of the life that was in him, and stood up
|
|
and snarled valiantly by his mother's side. But she thrust him
|
|
ignominiously away and behind her. Because of the low-roofed
|
|
entrance the lynx could not leap in, and when she made a crawling rush
|
|
of it the she-wolf sprang upon her and pinned her down. The cub saw
|
|
little of the battle. There was a tremendous snarling and spitting and
|
|
screeching. The two animals threshed about, the lynx ripping and
|
|
tearing with her claws and using her teeth as well, while the she-wolf
|
|
used her teeth alone.
|
|
|
|
Once, the cub sprang in and sank his teeth into the hind-leg of
|
|
the lynx. He clung on, growling savagely. Though he did not know it,
|
|
by the weight of his body he clogged the action of the leg and thereby
|
|
saved his mother much damage. A change in the battle crushed him under
|
|
both their bodies and wrenched loose his hold. The next moment the two
|
|
mothers separated, and, before they rushed together again, the lynx
|
|
lashed out at the cub with a huge forepaw that ripped his shoulder
|
|
open to the bone and sent him hurtling sidewise against the wall. Then
|
|
was added to the uproar the cub's shrill yelp of pain and fright.
|
|
But the fight lasted so long that he had time to cry himself out and
|
|
to experience a second burst of courage; and the end of the battle
|
|
found him again clinging to a hind-leg and furiously growling
|
|
between his teeth.
|
|
|
|
The lynx was dead. But the she-wolf was very weak and sick. At first
|
|
she caressed the cub and licked his wounded shoulder; but the blood
|
|
she had lost had taken with it her strength, and for all of a day
|
|
and a night she lay by her dead foe's side, without movement, scarcely
|
|
breathing. For a week she never left the cave, except for water, and
|
|
then her movements were slow and painful. At the end of that time
|
|
the lynx was devoured, while the she-wolf's wounds had healed
|
|
sufficiently to permit her to take the meat-trail again.
|
|
|
|
The cub's shoulder was stiff and sore, and for some time he limped
|
|
from the terrible slash he had received. But the world now seemed
|
|
changed. He went about in it with greater confidence, with a feeling
|
|
of prowess that had not been his in the days before the battle with
|
|
the lynx. He had looked upon life in a more ferocious aspect; he had
|
|
fought; he had buried his teeth in the flesh of a foe; and he had
|
|
survived. And because of all this, he carried himself more boldly,
|
|
with a touch of defiance that was new in him. He was no longer
|
|
afraid of minor things, and much of his timidity had vanished,
|
|
though the unknown never ceased to press upon him with its mysteries
|
|
and terrors, intangible and ever-menacing.
|
|
|
|
He began to accompany his mother on the meat-trail, and he saw
|
|
much of the killing of meat and began to play his part in it. And in
|
|
his own dim way he learned the law of meat. There were two kinds of
|
|
life- his own kind and the other kind. His own kind included his
|
|
mother and himself. The other kind included all live things that
|
|
moved. But the other kind was divided. One portion was that his own
|
|
kind killed and ate. This portion was composed of the non-killers
|
|
and the small killers. The other portion killed and ate his own
|
|
kind, or was killed and eaten by his own kind. And out of this
|
|
classification arose the law. The aim of life was meat. Life itself
|
|
was meat. Life lived on life. There were the eaters and the eaten. The
|
|
law was: EAT OR BE EATEN. He did not formulate the law in clear, set
|
|
terms and moralize about it. He did not even think the law; he
|
|
merely lived the law without thinking about it at all.
|
|
|
|
He saw the law operating around him on every side. He had eaten
|
|
the ptarmigan chicks. The hawk had eaten the ptarmigan-mother. The
|
|
hawk would also have eaten him. Later, when he had grown more
|
|
formidable, he wanted to eat the hawk. He had eaten the lynx kitten.
|
|
The lynx-mother would have eaten him had she not herself been killed
|
|
and eaten. And so it went. The law was being lived about him by all
|
|
live things, and he himself was part and parcel of the law. He was a
|
|
killer. His only food was meat, live meat, that ran away swiftly
|
|
before him, or flew into the air, or climbed trees, or hid in the
|
|
ground, or faced him and fought with him, or turned the tables and ran
|
|
after him.
|
|
|
|
Had the cub thought in man-fashion, he might have epitomized life as
|
|
a voracious appetite, and the world as a place wherein ranged a
|
|
multitude of appetites, pursuing and being pursued, hunting and
|
|
being hunted, eating and being eaten, all in blindness and
|
|
confusion, with violence and disorder, a chaos of gluttony and
|
|
slaughter, ruled over by chance, merciless, planless, endless.
|
|
|
|
But the cub did not think in man-fashion. He did not look at
|
|
things with wide vision. He was single-purposed, and entertained but
|
|
one thought or desire at a time. Besides the law of meat, there was
|
|
a myriad other and lesser laws for him to learn and obey. The world
|
|
was filled with surprise. The stir of the life that was in him, the
|
|
play of his muscles, was an unending happiness. To run down meat was
|
|
to experience thrills and elations. His rages and battles were
|
|
pleasures. Terror itself, and the mystery of the unknown, lent to
|
|
his living.
|
|
|
|
And there were easements and satisfactions. To have a full
|
|
stomach, to doze lazily in the sunshine- such things were remuneration
|
|
in full for his ardors and toils, while his ardors and toils were in
|
|
themselves self-remunerative. They were expressions of life, and
|
|
life is always happy when it is expressing itself. So the cub had no
|
|
quarrel with his hostile environment. He was very much alive, very
|
|
happy, and very proud of himself.
|
|
|
|
PART THREE.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER ONE.
|
|
|
|
The Makers of Fire.
|
|
|
|
THE CUB CAME UPON IT suddenly. It was his own fault. He had been
|
|
careless. He had left the cave and run down to the stream to drink. It
|
|
might have been that he took no notice because he was heavy with
|
|
sleep. (He had been out all night on the meat-trail, and had but
|
|
just then awakened.) And his carelessness might have been due to the
|
|
familiarity of the trail to the pool. He had traveled it often, and
|
|
nothing had ever happened on it.
|
|
|
|
He went down past the blasted pine, crossed the open space, and
|
|
trotted in amongst the trees. Then, at the same instant, he saw and
|
|
smelt. Before him, sitting silently on their haunches, were five
|
|
live things, the like of which he had never seen before. It was his
|
|
first glimpse of mankind. But at the sight of him the five men did not
|
|
spring to their feet, nor show their teeth, nor snarl. They did not
|
|
move, but sat there, silent and ominous.
|
|
|
|
Nor did the cub move. Every instinct of his nature would have
|
|
impelled him to dash wildly away, had there not suddenly and for the
|
|
first time arisen in him another and counter instinct. A great awe
|
|
descended upon him. He was beaten down to movelessness by an
|
|
overwhelming sense of his own weakness and littleness. Here was
|
|
mastery and power, something far and away beyond him.
|
|
|
|
The cub had never seen man, yet the instinct concerning man was his.
|
|
In dim ways he recognized in man the animal that had fought itself
|
|
to primacy over the other animals of the Wild. Not alone out of his
|
|
own eyes, but out of the eyes of all his ancestors was the cub now
|
|
looking upon man- out of eyes that had circled in the darkness
|
|
around countless winter campfires, that had peered from safe distances
|
|
and from the hearts of thickets at the strange, two-legged animal that
|
|
was lord over living things. The spell of the cub's heritage was
|
|
upon him, the fear and the respect born of the centuries of struggle
|
|
and the accumulated experience of the generations. The heritage was
|
|
too compelling for a wolf that was only a cub. Had he been full-grown,
|
|
he would have run away. As it was, he cowered down in a paralysis of
|
|
fear, already half proffering the submission that his kind had
|
|
proffered from the first time a wolf came in to sit by man's fire
|
|
and be made warm.
|
|
|
|
One of the Indians arose and walked over to him and stooped above
|
|
him. The cub cowered closer to the ground. It was the unknown,
|
|
objectified at last, in concrete flesh and blood, bending over him and
|
|
reaching down to seize hold of him. His hair bristled involuntarily;
|
|
his lips writhed back and his little fangs were bared. The hand,
|
|
poised like doom above him, hesitated, and the man spoke, laughing,
|
|
'Wabam wabisca ip pit tah.' ('Look! The white fangs!')
|
|
|
|
The other Indians laughed loudly, and urged the man on to pick up
|
|
the cub. As the hand descended closer and closer, there raged within
|
|
the cub a battle of the instincts. He experienced two great
|
|
impulsions- to yield and to fight. The resulting action was a
|
|
compromise. He did both. He yielded till the hand almost touched
|
|
him. Then he fought, his teeth flashing in a snap that sank them
|
|
into the hand. The next moment he received a clout alongside the
|
|
head that knocked him over on his side. Then all fight fled out of
|
|
him. His puppyhood and the instinct of submission took charge of
|
|
him. He sat up on his haunches and ki-yi'd. But the man whose hand
|
|
he had bitten was angry. The cub received a clout on the other side of
|
|
his head. Whereupon he sat up and ki-yi'd louder than ever.
|
|
|
|
The four Indians laughed more loudly, while even the man who had
|
|
been bitten began to laugh. They surrounded the cub and laughed at
|
|
him, while he wailed out his terror and his hurt. In the midst of
|
|
it, he heard something. The Indians heard it, too. But the cub knew
|
|
what it was, and with a last, long wail that had in it more of triumph
|
|
than grief, he ceased his noise and waited for the coming of his
|
|
mother, of his ferocious and indomitable mother who fought and
|
|
killed all things and was never afraid. She was snarling as she ran.
|
|
She had heard the cry of her cub and was dashing to save him.
|
|
|
|
She bounded in amongst them, her anxious and militant motherhood
|
|
making her anything but a pretty sight. But to the cub the spectacle
|
|
of her protective rage was pleasing. He uttered a glad little cry
|
|
and bounded to meet her, while the man-animals went back hastily
|
|
several steps. The she-wolf stood over against her cub, facing the
|
|
men, with bristling hair, a snarl rumbling deep in her throat. Her
|
|
face was distorted and malignant with menace, even the bridge of the
|
|
nose wrinkling from tip to eyes so prodigious was her snarl.
|
|
|
|
Then it was that a cry went up from one of the men. 'Kiche!' was
|
|
what he uttered. It was an exclamation of surprise. The cub felt his
|
|
mother wilting at the sound.
|
|
|
|
'Kiche!' the man cried again, this time with sharpness and
|
|
authority.
|
|
|
|
And then the cub saw his mother, the she-wolf, the fearless one,
|
|
crouching down till her belly touched the ground, whimpering,
|
|
wagging her tail, making peace signs. The cub could not understand. He
|
|
was appalled. The awe of man rushed over him again. His instinct had
|
|
been true. His mother verified it. She, too, rendered submission to
|
|
the man-animals.
|
|
|
|
The man who had spoken came over to her. He put his hand upon her
|
|
head, and she only crouched closer. She did not snap, nor threaten
|
|
to snap. The other men came up, and surrounded her, and felt her,
|
|
and pawed her, which actions she made no attempt to resent. They
|
|
were greatly excited, and made many noises with their mouths. Their
|
|
noises were not indications of danger, the cub decided, as he crouched
|
|
near his mother, still bristling from time to time but doing his
|
|
best to submit.
|
|
|
|
'It is not strange,' an Indian was saying. 'Her father was a true
|
|
wolf. It is true, her mother was a dog; but did not my brother tie her
|
|
out in the woods all of three nights in the mating season? Therefore
|
|
was the father of Kiche a wolf.'
|
|
|
|
'It is a year, Gray Beaver, since she ran away,' spoke a second
|
|
Indian.
|
|
|
|
It is not strange, Salmon Tongue,' Gray Beaver answered. 'It was the
|
|
time of the famine, and there was no meat for the dogs.'
|
|
|
|
'She has lived with the wolves,' said a third Indian.
|
|
|
|
'So it would seem, Three Eagles,' Gray Beaver answered, laying his
|
|
hand on the cub; 'and this be the sign of it.'
|
|
|
|
The cub snarled a little at the touch of the hand, and the hand flew
|
|
back to administer a clout. Whereupon the cub covered its fangs and
|
|
sank down submissively, while the hand, returning, rubbed behind his
|
|
ears and up and down his back.
|
|
|
|
'This be the sign of it,' Gray Beaver went on. 'It is plain that his
|
|
mother is Kiche. But his father was a wolf. Wherefore is there in
|
|
him little dog and much wolf. His fangs be white, and White Fang shall
|
|
be his name. I have spoken. He is my dog. For was not Kiche my
|
|
brother's dog? And is not my brother dead?'
|
|
|
|
The cub, who had thus received a name in the world, lay and watched.
|
|
For a time the man-animals continued to make their mouth-noises.
|
|
Then Gray Beaver took a knife from a sheath that hung around his neck,
|
|
and went into the thicket and cut a stick. White Fang watched him.
|
|
He notched the stick at each end and in the notches fastened strings
|
|
of rawhide. One string he tied around the throat of Kiche. Then he led
|
|
her to a small pine, around which he tied the other string.
|
|
|
|
White Fang followed and lay down beside her. Salmon Tongue's hand
|
|
reached out to him and rolled him over on his back. Kiche looked on
|
|
anxiously. White Fang felt fear mounting in him again. He could not
|
|
quite suppress a snarl, but he made no offer to snap. The hand, with
|
|
fingers crooked and spread apart, rubbed his stomach in a playful
|
|
way and rolled him from side to side. It was ridiculous and
|
|
ungainly, lying there on his back with legs sprawling in the air.
|
|
Besides, it was a position of such utter helplessness that White
|
|
Fang's whole nature revolted against it. He could do nothing to defend
|
|
himself. If this man-animal intended harm, White Fang knew that he
|
|
could not escape it. How could he spring away with his four legs in
|
|
the air above him? Yet submission made him master of his fear, and
|
|
he only growled softly. This growl he could not suppress; nor did
|
|
the man-animal resent it by giving him a blow on the head. And
|
|
furthermore, such was the strangeness of it, White Fang experienced an
|
|
unaccountable sensation of pleasure as the hand rubbed back and forth.
|
|
When he was rolled on his side he ceased the growl; when the fingers
|
|
pressed and prodded at the base of his ears the pleasurable
|
|
sensation increased; and when, with a final rub and scratch, the man
|
|
left him alone and went away, all fear had died out of White Fang.
|
|
He was to know fear many times in his dealings with man; yet it was
|
|
a token of the fearless companionship with man that was ultimately
|
|
to be his.
|
|
|
|
After a time, White Fang heard strange noises approaching. He was
|
|
quick in his classification, for he knew them at once for man-animal
|
|
noises. A few minutes later the remainder of the tribe, strung out
|
|
as it was on the march, trailed in. There were more men and many women
|
|
and children, forty souls of them, and all heavily burdened with
|
|
camp equipage and outfit. Also there were many dogs; and these, with
|
|
the exception of the part-grown puppies, were likewise burdened with
|
|
camp outfit. On their backs, in bags that fastened tightly around
|
|
underneath, the dogs carried from twenty to thirty pounds of weight.
|
|
|
|
White Fang had never seen dogs before, but at sight of them he
|
|
felt that they were his own kind, only somehow different. But they
|
|
displayed little difference from the wolf when they discovered the cub
|
|
and his mother. There was a rush. White Fang bristled and snarled
|
|
and snapped in the face of the open-mouthed oncoming wave of dogs, and
|
|
went down and under them, feeling the sharp slash of teeth in his
|
|
body, himself biting and tearing at the legs and bellies above him.
|
|
There was a great uproar. He could hear the snarl of Kiche as she
|
|
fought for him; and he could hear the cries of the man-animals, the
|
|
sound of clubs striking upon bodies, and the yelps of pain from the
|
|
dogs so struck.
|
|
|
|
Only a few seconds elapsed before he was on his feet again. He could
|
|
now see the man-animals driving back the dogs with clubs and stones,
|
|
defending him, saving him from the savage teeth of his kind that
|
|
somehow was not his kind. And though there was no reason in his
|
|
brain for a clear conception of so abstract a thing as justice,
|
|
nevertheless, in his own way, he felt the justice of the
|
|
man-animals, and he knew them for what they were- makers of law and
|
|
executors of law. Also, he appreciated the power with which they
|
|
administered the law. Unlike any animals he had ever encountered, they
|
|
did not bite nor claw. They enforced their live strength with the
|
|
power of dead things. Dead things did their bidding. Thus, sticks
|
|
and stones, directed by these strange creatures, leaped through the
|
|
air like living things, inflicting grievous hurts upon the dogs.
|
|
|
|
To his mind this was power unusual, power inconceivable and beyond
|
|
the natural, power that was god-like. White Fang, in the very nature
|
|
of him, could never know anything about gods; at the best he could
|
|
know only things that were beyond knowing; but the wonder and awe that
|
|
he had of these man-animals in ways resembled what would be the wonder
|
|
and awe of man at sight of some celestial creature, on a mountain top,
|
|
hurling thunderbolts from either hand at an astonished world.
|
|
|
|
The last dog had been driven back. The hubbub died down. And White
|
|
Fang licked his hurts and meditated upon this, his first taste of
|
|
pack-cruelty and his introduction to the pack. He had never dreamed
|
|
that his own kind consisted of more than One Eye, his mother, and
|
|
himself. They had constituted a kind apart, and here, abruptly, he had
|
|
discovered many more creatures apparently of his own kind. And there
|
|
was a subconscious resentment that these, his kind, at first sight had
|
|
pitched upon him and tried to destroy him. In the same way he resented
|
|
his mother being tied with a stick, even though it was done by the
|
|
superior man-animals. It savored of the trap, of bondage. Yet of the
|
|
trap and of bondage he knew nothing. Freedom to roam and run and lie
|
|
down at will, had been his heritage; and here it was being infringed
|
|
upon. His mother's movements were restricted to the length of a stick,
|
|
and by the length of that same stick was he restricted, for he had not
|
|
yet got beyond the need of his mother's side.
|
|
|
|
He did not like it. Nor did he like it when the man-animals arose
|
|
and went on with their march; for a tiny man-animal took the other end
|
|
of the stick and led Kiche captive behind him, and behind Kiche
|
|
followed White Fang, greatly perturbed and worried by his new
|
|
adventure he had entered upon.
|
|
|
|
They went down the valley of the stream, far beyond White Fang's
|
|
widest ranging, until they came to the end of the valley, where the
|
|
stream ran into the Mackenzie River. Here, where canoes were cached on
|
|
poles high in the air and where stood fish-racks for the drying of
|
|
fish, camp was made; and White Fang looked on with wondering eyes. The
|
|
superiority of these man-animals increased with every moment. There
|
|
was their mastery over all these sharp-fanged dogs. It breathed of
|
|
power. But greater than that, to the wolf-cub, was their mastery
|
|
over things not alive; their capacity to change the very face of the
|
|
world.
|
|
|
|
It was this last that especially affected him. The elevation of
|
|
frames of poles caught his eye; yet this in itself was not so
|
|
remarkable, being done by the same creatures that flung sticks and
|
|
stones to great distances. But when the frames of poles were made into
|
|
tepees by being covered with cloth and skins, White Fang was
|
|
astounded. It was the colossal bulk of them that impressed him. They
|
|
arose around him, on either side, like some monstrous quick-growing
|
|
form of life. They occupied nearly the whole circumference of his
|
|
field of vision. He was afraid of them. They loomed ominously above
|
|
him; and when the breeze stirred them into huge movements, he
|
|
cowered down in fear, keeping his eyes warily upon them, and
|
|
prepared to spring away if they attempted to precipitate themselves
|
|
upon him.
|
|
|
|
But in a short while his fear of the tepees passed away. He saw
|
|
the women and children passing in and out of them without harm, and he
|
|
saw the dogs trying often to get into them, and being driven away with
|
|
sharp words and flying stones. After a time, he left Kiche's side
|
|
and crawled cautiously toward the wall of the nearest tepee. It was
|
|
the curiosity of growth that urged him on- the necessity of learning
|
|
and living and doing that brings experience. The last few inches to
|
|
the wall of the tepee were crawled with painful slowness and
|
|
precaution. The day's events had prepared him for the unknown to
|
|
manifest itself in most stupendous and unthinkable ways. At last his
|
|
nose touched the canvas. He waited. Nothing happened. Then he
|
|
smelled the strange fabric saturated with the man-smell. He closed
|
|
on the canvas with his teeth and gave a gentle tug. Nothing
|
|
happened, though the adjacent portion of the tepee moved. He tugged
|
|
harder. There was a greater movement. It was delightful. He tugged
|
|
still harder, and repeatedly, until the whole tepee was in motion.
|
|
Then the sharp cry of a squaw inside sent him scampering back to
|
|
Kiche. But after that he was afraid no more of the looming bulks of
|
|
the tepees.
|
|
|
|
A moment later he was straying away again from his mother. Her stick
|
|
was tied to a peg in the ground and she could not follow him. A
|
|
part-grown puppy, somewhat larger and older than he, came toward him
|
|
slowly, with ostentatious and belligerent importance. The puppy's
|
|
name, as White Fang was afterward to hear him called, was Lip-lip.
|
|
He had had experience in puppy fights and was already something of a
|
|
bully.
|
|
|
|
Lip-lip was White Fang's own kind, and, being only a puppy, did
|
|
not seem dangerous; so White Fang prepared to meet him in friendly
|
|
spirit. But when the stranger's walk became stiff-legged and his
|
|
lips lifted clear of his teeth, White Fang stiffened, too, and
|
|
answered with lifted lips. They half circled about each other,
|
|
tentatively, snarling and bristling. This lasted several minutes,
|
|
and White Fang was beginning to enjoy it, as a sort of game. But
|
|
suddenly, with remarkable swiftness, Lip-lip leaped in, delivered a
|
|
slashing snap, and leaped away again. The snap had taken effect on the
|
|
shoulder that had been hurt by the lynx and that was still sore deep
|
|
down near the bone. The surprise and hurt of it brought a yelp out
|
|
of White Fang; but the next moment, in a rush of anger, he was upon
|
|
Lip-lip and snapping viciously.
|
|
|
|
But Lip-lip had lived his life in camp and had fought many puppy
|
|
fights. Three times, four times, and half a dozen times, his sharp
|
|
little teeth scored on the newcomer, until White Fang, yelping
|
|
shamelessly, fled to the protection of his mother. It was the first of
|
|
many fights he was to have with Lip-lip, for they were enemies from
|
|
the start, born so, with natures destined perpetually to clash.
|
|
|
|
Kiche licked White Fang soothingly with her tongue, and tried to
|
|
prevail upon him to remain with her. But his curiosity was rampant,
|
|
and several minutes later he was venturing forth on a new quest. He
|
|
came upon one of the man-animals, Gray Beaver, who was squatting on
|
|
his hams and doing something with sticks and dry moss spread before
|
|
him on the ground. White Fang came near to him and watched. Gray
|
|
Beaver made mouth-noises which White Fang interpreted as not
|
|
hostile, so he came still nearer.
|
|
|
|
Women and children were carrying more sticks and branches to Gray
|
|
Beaver. It was evidently an affair of moment. White Fang came in until
|
|
he touched Gray Beaver's knee, so curious was he, and already
|
|
forgetful that this was a terrible man-animal. Suddenly he saw a
|
|
strange thing like mist beginning to arise from the sticks and moss
|
|
beneath Gray Beaver's hands. Then, amongst the sticks themselves,
|
|
appeared a live thing, twisting and turning, of a color like the color
|
|
of the sun in the sky. White Fang knew nothing about fire. It drew him
|
|
as the light in the mouth of the cave had drawn him in his early
|
|
puppyhood. He crawled the several steps toward the flame. He heard
|
|
Gray Beaver chuckle above him, and he knew the sound was not
|
|
hostile. Then his nose touched the flame, and at the same instant
|
|
his little tongue went out to it.
|
|
|
|
For a moment he was paralyzed. The unknown, lurking in the midst
|
|
of the sticks and moss, was savagely clutching him by the nose. He
|
|
scrambled backward, bursting out in an astonished explosion of
|
|
ki-yi's. At the sound, Kiche leaped snarling to the end of her
|
|
stick, and there raged terribly because she could not come to his aid.
|
|
But Gray Beaver laughed loudly, and slapped his thighs, and told the
|
|
happening to all the rest of the camp, till everybody was laughing
|
|
uproariously. But White Fang sat on his haunches and ki-yi'd and
|
|
ki-yi'd, a forlorn and pitiable little figure in the midst of the
|
|
man-animals.
|
|
|
|
It was the worst hurt he had ever known. Both nose and tongue had
|
|
been scorched by the live thing, sun-colored, that had grown up
|
|
under Gray Beaver's hands. He cried and cried interminably, and
|
|
every fresh wail was greeted by bursts of laughter on the part of
|
|
the man-animals. He tried to soothe his nose with his tongue, but
|
|
the tongue was burnt too, and the two hurts coming together produced
|
|
greater hurt; whereupon he cried more hopelessly and helplessly than
|
|
ever.
|
|
|
|
And then shame came to him. He knew laughter and the meaning of
|
|
it. It is not given us to know how some animals know laughter, and
|
|
know when they are being laughed at; but it was this same way that
|
|
White Fang knew it. And he felt shame that the man-animals should be
|
|
laughing at him. He turned and fled away, not from the hurt of the
|
|
fire, but from the laughter that sank even deeper, and hurt in the
|
|
spirit of him. And he fled to Kiche, raging at the end of her stick
|
|
like an animal gone mad- to Kiche, the one creature in the world who
|
|
was not laughing at him.
|
|
|
|
Twilight drew down and night came on, and White Fang lay by his
|
|
mother's side. His nose and tongue still hurt, but he was perplexed by
|
|
a greater trouble. He was homesick. He felt a vacancy in him, a need
|
|
for the hush and quietude of the stream and the cave in the cliff.
|
|
Life had become too populous. There were so many of the man-animals,
|
|
men, women, and children, all making noises and irritations. And there
|
|
were the dogs, ever squabbling and bickering, bursting into uproars
|
|
and creating confusions. The restful loneliness of the only life he
|
|
had known was gone. Here the very air was palpitant with life. It
|
|
hummed and buzzed unceasingly. Continually changing its intensity
|
|
and abruptly variant in pitch, it impinged on his nerves and senses,
|
|
made him nervous and restless and worried him with a perpetual
|
|
imminence of happening.
|
|
|
|
He watched the man-animals coming and going and moving about the
|
|
camp. In fashion distantly resembling the way men look upon the gods
|
|
they create, so looked White Fang upon the man-animals before him.
|
|
They were superior creatures, of a verity, gods. To his dim
|
|
comprehension they were as much wonder-workers as gods are to men.
|
|
They were creatures of mastery, possessing all manner of unknown and
|
|
impossible potencies, overlords of the alive and the not alive- making
|
|
obey that which moved, imparting movements to that which did not move,
|
|
and making life, sun-colored and biting life, to grow out of dead moss
|
|
and wood. They were fire-makers! They were gods!
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER TWO.
|
|
|
|
The Bondage.
|
|
|
|
THE DAYS WERE THRONGED with experience for White Fang. During the
|
|
time that Kiche was tied by the stick, he ran about over all the camp,
|
|
inquiring, investigating, learning. He quickly came to know much of
|
|
the ways of the man-animals, but familiarity did not breed contempt.
|
|
The more he came to know them, the more they vindicated their
|
|
superiority, the more they displayed their mysterious powers, the
|
|
greater loomed their god-likeness.
|
|
|
|
To man has been given the grief, often, of seeing his gods
|
|
overthrown and his altars crumbling; but to the wolf and the wild
|
|
dog that have come in to crouch at man's feet, this grief has never
|
|
come. Unlike man, whose gods are of the unseen and the overguessed,
|
|
vapors and mists of fancy eluding the garmenture of reality, wandering
|
|
wraiths of desired goodness and power, intangible outcroppings of self
|
|
into the realm of spirit- unlike man, the wolf and the wild dog that
|
|
have come in to the fire find their gods in the living flesh, solid to
|
|
the touch, occupying the earth-space and requiring time for the
|
|
accomplishment of their ends and their existence. No effort of faith
|
|
is necessary to believe in such a god; no effort of will can
|
|
possibly include disbelief in such a god. There is no getting away
|
|
from it. There it stands, on its two hind-legs, club in hand,
|
|
immensely potential, passionate and wrathful and loving, god and
|
|
mystery and power of all wrapped up and around by flesh that bleeds
|
|
when it is torn and that is good to eat like any flesh.
|
|
|
|
And so it was with White Fang. The man-animals were gods
|
|
unmistakable and unescapable. As his mother, Kiche, had rendered her
|
|
allegiance to them at the first cry of her name, so he was beginning
|
|
to render his allegiance. He gave them the trail as a privilege
|
|
indubitably theirs. When they walked, he got out of their way. When
|
|
they called, he came. When they threatened, he cowered down. When they
|
|
commanded him to go, he went away hurriedly. For behind any wish of
|
|
theirs was power to enforce that wish, power that hurt, power that
|
|
expressed itself in clouts and clubs, in flying stones and stinging
|
|
lashes of whips.
|
|
|
|
He belonged to them as all dogs belonged to them. His actions were
|
|
theirs to command. His body was theirs to maul, to stamp upon, to
|
|
tolerate. Such was the lesson that was quickly borne in upon him. It
|
|
came hard, going as it did, counter to much that was strong and
|
|
dominant in his own nature; and, while he disliked it in the
|
|
learning of it, unknown to himself he was learning to like it. It
|
|
was a placing of his destiny in another's hands, a shifting of the
|
|
responsibilities of existence. This in itself was compensation, for it
|
|
is always easier to lean upon another than to stand alone.
|
|
|
|
But it did not all happen in a day, this giving over of himself,
|
|
body and soul, to the man-animals. He could not immediately forego his
|
|
wild heritage and his memories of the Wild. There were days when he
|
|
crept to the edge of the forest and stood and listened to something
|
|
calling him far and away. And always he returned, restless and
|
|
uncomfortable, to whimper softly and wistfully at Kiche's side and
|
|
to lick her face with eager, questioning tongue.
|
|
|
|
White Fang learned rapidly the ways of the camp. He knew the
|
|
injustice and greediness of the older dogs when meat or fish was
|
|
thrown out to be eaten. He came to know that men were more just,
|
|
children more cruel, and women more kindly and more likely to toss him
|
|
a bit of meat or bone. And after two or three painful adventures
|
|
with the mothers of part-grown puppies, he came into the knowledge
|
|
that it was always good policy to let such mothers alone, to keep away
|
|
from them as far as possible, and to avoid them when he saw them
|
|
coming.
|
|
|
|
But the bane of his life was Lip-lip. Larger, older, and stronger,
|
|
Lip-lip had selected White Fang for his special object of persecution.
|
|
White Fang fought willingly enough, but he was outclassed. His enemy
|
|
was too big. Lip-lip became a nightmare to him. Whenever he ventured
|
|
away from his mother, the bully was sure to appear, trailing at his
|
|
heels, snarling at him, picking upon him, and watchful of an
|
|
opportunity, when no man-animal was near, to spring upon him and force
|
|
a fight. As Lip-lip invariably won, he enjoyed it hugely. It became
|
|
his chief delight in life, as it became White Fang's chief torment.
|
|
|
|
But the effect upon White Fang was not to cow him. Though he
|
|
suffered most of the damage and was always defeated, his spirit
|
|
remained unsubdued. Yet a bad effect was produced. He became malignant
|
|
and morose. His temper had been savage by birth, but it became more
|
|
savage under this unending persecution. The genial, playful,
|
|
puppyish side of him found little expression. He never played and
|
|
gambolled about with the other puppies of the camp. Lip-lip would
|
|
not permit it. The moment White Fang appeared near them, Lip-lip was
|
|
upon him, bullying and hectoring him, or fighting with him until he
|
|
had driven him away.
|
|
|
|
The effect of all this was to rob White Fang of much of his
|
|
puppyhood and to make him in his comportment older than his age.
|
|
Denied the outlet, through play, of his energies, he recoiled upon
|
|
himself and developed his mental processes. He became cunning; he
|
|
had idle time in which to devote himself to thoughts of trickery.
|
|
Prevented from obtaining his share of meat and fish when a general
|
|
feed was given to the camp-dogs, he became a clever thief. He had to
|
|
forage for himself, and he foraged well, though he was oft-times a
|
|
plague to the squaws in consequence. He learned to sneak about camp,
|
|
to be crafty, to know what was going on everywhere, to see and to hear
|
|
everything and to reason accordingly, and successfully to devise
|
|
ways and means of avoiding his implacable persecutor.
|
|
|
|
It was early in the days of his persecution that he played the first
|
|
really big crafty game and got therefrom his first taste of revenge.
|
|
As Kiche, when with the wolves, had lured out to destruction dogs from
|
|
the camps of men, so White Fang, in manner somewhat similar, lured
|
|
Lip-lip, into Kiche's avenging jaws. Retreating before Lip-lip,
|
|
White Fang made an indirect flight that led in and out and around
|
|
the various tepees of the camp. He was a good runner, swifter than any
|
|
other puppy of his size, and swifter than Lip-lip. But he did not
|
|
run his best in this chase. He barely held his own, one leap ahead
|
|
of his pursuer.
|
|
|
|
Lip-lip, excited by the chase and by the persistent nearness of
|
|
his victim, forgot caution and locality. When he remembered
|
|
locality, it was too late. Dashing at top speed around a tepee, he ran
|
|
full tilt into Kiche lying at the end of her stick. He gave one yelp
|
|
of consternation, and then her punishing jaws closed upon him. She was
|
|
tied, but he could not get away from her easily. She rolled him off
|
|
his legs so that he could not run, while she repeatedly ripped and
|
|
slashed him with her fangs.
|
|
|
|
When at last he succeeded in rolling clear of her, he crawled to his
|
|
feet, badly dishevelled, hurt both in body and in spirit. His hair was
|
|
standing out all over him in tufts where her teeth had mauled. He
|
|
stood where he had arisen, opened his mouth, and broke out the long,
|
|
heart-broken puppy wail. But even this he was not allowed to complete.
|
|
In the middle of it, White Fang, rushing in, sank his teeth into
|
|
Lip-lip's hind-leg. There was no fight left in Lip-lip, and he ran
|
|
away shamelessly, his victim hot on his heels and worrying him all the
|
|
way back to his own tepee. Here the squaws came to his aid, and
|
|
White Fang, transformed into a raging demon, was finally driven off
|
|
only by a fusillade of stones.
|
|
|
|
Came the day when Gray Beaver, deciding that the liability of her
|
|
running away was past, released Kiche. White Fang was delighted with
|
|
his mother's freedom. He accompanied her joyfully about the camp; and,
|
|
so long as he remained close by her side, Lip-lip kept a respectful
|
|
distance. White Fang even bristled up to him and walked
|
|
stiff-legged, but Lip-lip ignored the challenge. He was no fool
|
|
himself, and whatever vengeance he desired to wreak, he could wait
|
|
until he caught White Fang alone.
|
|
|
|
Later on that day, Kiche and White Fang strayed into the edge of the
|
|
woods next to the camp. He had led his mother there, step by step, and
|
|
now, when she stopped, he tried to inveigle her farther. The stream,
|
|
the lair, and the quiet woods were calling to him, and he wanted her
|
|
to come. He ran on a few steps, stopped, and looked back. She had
|
|
not moved. He whined pleadingly, and scurried playfully in and out
|
|
of the underbrush. He ran back to her, licked her face, and ran on
|
|
again. And still she did not move. He stopped and regarded her, all of
|
|
an intentness and eagerness, physically expressed, that slowly faded
|
|
out of him as she turned her head and gazed back at the camp.
|
|
|
|
There was something calling to him out there in the open. His mother
|
|
heard it, too. But she heard also that other and louder call, the call
|
|
of the fire and of man- the call which it has been given alone of
|
|
all animals to the wolf to answer, to the wolf and the wild-dog, who
|
|
are brothers.
|
|
|
|
Kiche turned and slowly trotted back toward camp. Stronger than
|
|
the physical restraint of the stick was the clutch of the camp upon
|
|
her. Unseen and occultly, the gods still gripped with their power
|
|
and would not let her go. White Fang sat down in the shadow of a birch
|
|
and whimpered softly. There was a strong smell of pine, and subtle
|
|
woods fragrances filled the air, reminding him of his old life of
|
|
freedom before the days of his bondage. But he was still only a
|
|
part-grown puppy, and stronger than the call either of man or of the
|
|
Wild was the call of his mother. All the hours of his short life he
|
|
had depended upon her. The time was yet to come for independence. So
|
|
he arose and trotted forlornly back to camp, pausing once, and
|
|
twice, to sit down and whimper and to listen to the call that still
|
|
sounded in the depths of the forest.
|
|
|
|
In the Wild the time of a mother with her young is short; but
|
|
under the dominion of man it is sometimes even shorter. Thus it was
|
|
with White Fang. Gray Beaver was in the debt of Three Eagles. Three
|
|
Eagles was going away on a trip up the Mackenzie to the Great Slave
|
|
Lake. A strip of scarlet cloth, a bearskin, twenty cartridges, and
|
|
Kiche, went to pay the debt. White Fang saw his mother taken aboard
|
|
Three Eagles' canoe, and tried to follow her. A blow from Three Eagles
|
|
knocked him backward to the land. The canoe shoved off. He sprang into
|
|
the water and swam after it, deaf to the sharp cries of Gray Beaver to
|
|
return. Even a man-animal, a god, White Fang ignored, such was the
|
|
terror he was in of losing his mother.
|
|
|
|
But gods are accustomed to being obeyed, and Gray Beaver
|
|
wrathfully launched a canoe in pursuit. When he overtook White Fang,
|
|
he reached down and by the nape of the neck lifted him clear of the
|
|
water. He did not deposit him at once in the bottom of the canoe.
|
|
Holding him suspended with one hand, with the other hand, he proceeded
|
|
to give him a beating. And it was a beating. His hand was heavy. Every
|
|
blow was shrewd to hurt; and he delivered a multitude of blows.
|
|
|
|
Impelled by the blows that rained upon him, now from this side,
|
|
now from that, White Fang swung back and forth like an erratic and
|
|
jerky pendulum. Varying were the emotions that surged through him.
|
|
At first he had known surprise. Then came a momentary fear, when he
|
|
yelped several times to the impact of the hand. But this was quickly
|
|
followed by anger. His free nature asserted itself, and he showed
|
|
his teeth and snarled fearlessly in the face of the wrathful god. This
|
|
but served to make the god more wrathful. The blows came faster,
|
|
heavier, more shrewd to hurt.
|
|
|
|
Gray Beaver continued to beat. White Fang continued to snarl. But
|
|
this could not last forever. One or the other must give over and
|
|
that one was White Fang. Fear surged through him again. For the
|
|
first time he was really being manhandled. The occasional blows of
|
|
sticks and stones he had previously experienced were as caresses
|
|
compared with this. He broke down and began to cry and yelp. For a
|
|
time each blow brought a yelp from him; but fear passed into terror,
|
|
until finally his yelps were voiced in unbroken succession,
|
|
unconnected with the rhythm of the punishment.
|
|
|
|
At last Gray Beaver withheld his hand. White Fang, hanging limply,
|
|
continued to cry. This seemed to satisfy his master, who flung him
|
|
down roughly in the bottom of the canoe. In the meantime the canoe had
|
|
drifted down the stream. Gray Beaver picked up the paddle. White
|
|
Fang was in his way. He spurned him savagely with his foot. In that
|
|
moment White Fang's free nature flashed forth again, and he sunk his
|
|
teeth into the moccasined foot.
|
|
|
|
The beating that had gone before was as nothing compared with the
|
|
beating he now received. Gray Beaver's wrath was terrible; likewise
|
|
was White Fang's fright. Not only the hand, but the hard wooden paddle
|
|
was used upon him; and he was bruised and sore in all his small body
|
|
when he was again flung down in the canoe. Again, and this time with
|
|
purpose, did Gray Beaver kick him. White Fang did not repeat his
|
|
attack on the foot. He had learned another lesson of his bondage.
|
|
Never, no matter what the circumstances, must he dare to bite the
|
|
god who was lord and master over him; the body of the lord and
|
|
master was sacred, not to be defiled by the teeth of such as he.
|
|
That was evidently the crime of crimes, the one offense there was no
|
|
condoning nor overlooking.
|
|
|
|
When the canoe touched the shore, White Fang lay whimpering and
|
|
motionless, waiting the will of Gray Beaver. It was Gray Beaver's will
|
|
that he should go ashore, for ashore he was flung, striking heavily on
|
|
his side and hurting his bruises afresh. He crawled tremblingly to his
|
|
feet and stood whimpering. Lip-lip, who had watched the whole
|
|
proceeding from the bank, now rushed upon him, knocking him over and
|
|
sinking his teeth into him. White Fang was too helpless to defend
|
|
himself, and it would have gone hard with him had not Gray Beaver's
|
|
foot shot out, lifting Lip-lip into the air with its violence so
|
|
that he smashed down to earth a dozen feet away. This was the
|
|
man-animal's justice; and even then, in his own pitiable plight, White
|
|
Fang experienced a little grateful thrill. At Gray Beaver's heels he
|
|
limped obediently through the village to the tepee. And so it came
|
|
that White Fang learned that the right to punish was something the
|
|
gods reserved for themselves and denied to the lesser creatures
|
|
under them.
|
|
|
|
That night, when all was still, White Fang remembered his mother and
|
|
sorrowed for her. He sorrowed too loudly and woke up Gray Beaver,
|
|
who beat him. After that he mourned gently when the gods were
|
|
around. But sometimes, straying off to the edge of the woods by
|
|
himself, he gave vent to his grief, and cried it out with loud
|
|
whimperings and wailings.
|
|
|
|
It was during this period that he might have hearkened to the
|
|
memories of the lair and the stream and run back into the Wild. But
|
|
the memory of his mother held him. As the hunting man-animals went out
|
|
and came back, so she would come back to the village sometime. So he
|
|
remained in his bondage waiting for her.
|
|
|
|
But it was not altogether an unhappy bondage. There was much to
|
|
interest him. Something was always happening. There was no end to
|
|
the strange things these gods did, and he was always curious to see.
|
|
Besides, he was learning how to get along with Gray Beaver. Obedience,
|
|
rigid, undeviating obedience, was what was expected of him; and in
|
|
return he escaped beatings and his existence was tolerated.
|
|
|
|
Nay, Gray Beaver himself sometimes tossed him a piece of meat, and
|
|
defended him against the other dogs in the eating of it. And such a
|
|
piece of meat was of value. It was worth more, in some strange way,
|
|
than a dozen pieces of meat from the hand of a squaw. Gray Beaver
|
|
never petted nor caressed. Perhaps it was the weight of his hand,
|
|
perhaps his justice, perhaps the sheer power of him, and perhaps it
|
|
was all these things that influenced White Fang; for a certain tie
|
|
of attachment was forming between him and his surly lord.
|
|
|
|
Insidiously, and by remote ways, as well as by the power of stick
|
|
and stone and clout of hand, were the shackles of White Fang's bondage
|
|
being riveted upon him. The qualities in his kind that in the
|
|
beginning made it possible for them to come into the fires of men,
|
|
were qualities capable of development. They were developing in him,
|
|
and the camp-life, replete with misery as it was, was secretly
|
|
endearing itself to him all the time. But White Fang was unaware of
|
|
it. He knew only grief for the loss of Kiche, hope for her return, and
|
|
a hungry yearning for the free life that had been his.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER THREE.
|
|
|
|
The Outcast.
|
|
|
|
LIP-LIP CONTINUED so to darken his days that White Fang became
|
|
wickeder and more ferocious than it was his natural right to be.
|
|
Savageness was a part of his make-up, but the savageness thus
|
|
developed exceeded his make-up. He acquired a reputation for
|
|
wickedness amongst the man-animals themselves. Wherever there was
|
|
trouble and uproar in camp, fighting and squabbling or the outcry of a
|
|
squaw over a bit of stolen meat, they were sure to find White Fang
|
|
mixed up in it and usually at the bottom of it. They did not bother to
|
|
look after the causes of his conduct. They saw only the effects, and
|
|
the effects were bad. He was a sneak and a thief, a mischief-maker,
|
|
a fomenter of trouble; and irate squaws told him to his face, the
|
|
while he eyed them alert and ready to dodge any quick-flung missile,
|
|
that he was a wolf and worthless and bound to come to an evil end.
|
|
|
|
He found himself an outcast in the midst of the populous camp. All
|
|
the young dogs followed Lip-lip's lead. There was a difference between
|
|
White Fang and them. Perhaps they sensed his wild-wood breed, and
|
|
instinctively felt for him the enmity that the domestic dog feels
|
|
for the wolf. But be that as it may, they joined with Lip-lip in the
|
|
persecution. And, once declared against him, they found good reason to
|
|
continue declared against him. One and all, from time to time, they
|
|
felt his teeth; and to his credit, he gave more than he received. Many
|
|
of them he could whip in a single fight; but single fight was denied
|
|
him. The beginning of such a fight was a signal for all the young dogs
|
|
in camp to come running and pitch upon him.
|
|
|
|
Out of this pack-persecution he learned two important things: how to
|
|
take care of himself in a mass-fight against him; and how, on a single
|
|
dog, to inflict the greatest amount of damage in the briefest space of
|
|
time. To keep one's feet in the midst of the hostile mass meant
|
|
life, and this he learned well. He became cat-like in his ability to
|
|
stay on his feet. Even grown dogs might hurtle him backward or
|
|
sideways with the impact of their heavy bodies; and backward or
|
|
sideways he would go, in the air or sliding on the ground, but
|
|
always with his legs under him and his feet downward to the mother
|
|
earth.
|
|
|
|
When dogs fight, there are usually preliminaries to the actual
|
|
combat- snarlings and bristlings and stiff-legged struttings. But
|
|
White Fang learned to omit these preliminaries. Delay meant the coming
|
|
against him of all the young dogs. He must do his work quickly and get
|
|
away. So he learned to give no warning of his intention. He rushed
|
|
in and snapped and slashed on the instant, without notice, before
|
|
his foe could prepare to meet him. Thus he learned how to inflict
|
|
quick and severe damage. Also he learned the value of surprise. A dog,
|
|
taken off its guard, its shoulder slashed open or its ear ripped in
|
|
ribbons before it knew what was happening, was a dog half whipped.
|
|
|
|
Furthermore it was remarkably easy to overthrow a dog taken by
|
|
surprise; while a dog, thus overthrown, invariably exposed for a
|
|
moment the soft underside of its neck- the vulnerable point at which
|
|
to strike for its life. White Fang knew this point. It was a knowledge
|
|
bequeathed to him directly from the hunting generations of wolves.
|
|
So it was that White Fang's method when he took the offensive, was:
|
|
first, to find a young dog alone; second, to surprise it and knock
|
|
it off its feet; and third, to drive in with his teeth at the soft
|
|
throat.
|
|
|
|
Being but partly grown, his jaws had not yet become large enough nor
|
|
strong enough to make his throat-attack deadly; but many a young dog
|
|
went around camp with a lacerated throat in token of White Fang's
|
|
intention. And one day, catching one of his enemies alone on the
|
|
edge of the woods, he managed, by repeatedly overthrowing him and
|
|
attacking the throat, to cut the great vein and let out the life.
|
|
There had been a great row that night. He had been observed, the
|
|
news had been carried to the dead dog's master, the squaws
|
|
remembered all the instances of the stolen meat, and Gray Beaver was
|
|
beset by many angry voices. But he resolutely held the door of his
|
|
tepee, inside which he had placed the culprit, and refused to permit
|
|
the vengeance for which his tribes-people clamored.
|
|
|
|
White Fang became hated by man and dog. During this period of his
|
|
development he never knew a moment's security. The tooth of every
|
|
dog was against him, the hand of every man. He was greeted with snarls
|
|
by his kind, with curses and stones by his gods. He lived tensely.
|
|
He was always keyed up, alert for attack, wary of being attacked, with
|
|
an eye for sudden and unexpected missiles, prepared to act
|
|
precipitately and coolly, to leap in with a flash of teeth, or to leap
|
|
away with a menacing snarl.
|
|
|
|
As for snarling, he could snarl more terribly than any dog, young or
|
|
old, in camp. The intent of the snarl is to warn or frighten, and
|
|
judgment is required to know when it should be used. White Fang knew
|
|
how to make it and when to make it. Into his snarl he incorporated all
|
|
that was vicious, malignant, and horrible. With nose serrulated by
|
|
continuous spasms, hair bristling in recurrent waves, tongue
|
|
whipping out like a red snake and whipping back again, ears
|
|
flattened down, eyes gleaming hatred, lips wrinkled back, and fangs
|
|
exposed and dripping, he could compel a pause on the part of almost
|
|
any assailant. A temporary pause, when taken off his guard, gave him
|
|
the vital moment in which to think and determine his action. But often
|
|
a pause so gained lengthened out until it evolved into a complete
|
|
cessation from the attack. And before more than one of the grown
|
|
dogs White Fang's snarl enabled him to beat an honorable retreat.
|
|
|
|
An outcast himself from the pack of the part-grown dogs, his
|
|
sanguinary methods and remarkable efficiency made the pack pay for its
|
|
persecution of him. Not permitted himself to run with the pack, the
|
|
curious state of affairs obtained that no member of the pack could run
|
|
outside the pack. White Fang would not permit it. What of his
|
|
bushwhacking and waylaying tactics, the young dogs were afraid to
|
|
run by themselves. With the exception of Lip-lip, they were
|
|
compelled to bunch together for mutual protection against the terrible
|
|
enemy they had made. A puppy alone by the river bank meant a puppy
|
|
dead or a puppy that aroused the camp with its shrill pain and
|
|
terror as it fled back from the wolf-cub that had waylaid it.
|
|
|
|
But White Fang's reprisals did not cease, even when the young dogs
|
|
had learned thoroughly that they must stay together. He attacked
|
|
them when he caught them alone, and they attacked him when they were
|
|
bunched. The sight of him was sufficient to start them rushing after
|
|
him, at which times his swiftness usually carried him into safety. But
|
|
woe to the dog that outran his fellows in such pursuit! White Fang had
|
|
learned to turn suddenly upon the pursuer that was ahead of the pack
|
|
and thoroughly to rip him up before the pack could arrive. This
|
|
occurred with great frequency, for, once in full cry, the dogs were
|
|
prone to forget themselves in the excitement of the chase, while White
|
|
Fang never forgot himself. Stealing backward glances as he ran, he was
|
|
always ready to whirl around and down the overzealous pursuer that
|
|
outran his fellows.
|
|
|
|
Young dogs are bound to play, and out of the exigencies of the
|
|
situation they realized their play in the mimic warfare. Thus it was
|
|
that the hunt of White Fang became their chief game- a deadly game,
|
|
withal, and at all times a serious game. He, on the other hand,
|
|
being the fastest-footed, was unafraid to venture anywhere. During the
|
|
period that he waited vainly for his mother to come back, he led the
|
|
pack many a wild chase through the adjacent woods. But the pack
|
|
invariably lost him. Its noise and outcry warned him of its
|
|
presence, while he ran alone, velvet-footed, silently, a moving shadow
|
|
among the trees after the manner of his father and mother before
|
|
him. Further, he was more directly connected with the Wild than
|
|
they; and he knew more of its secrets and stratagems. A favorite trick
|
|
of his was to lose his trail in running water and then lie quietly
|
|
in a nearby thicket while their baffled cries arose around him.
|
|
|
|
Hated by his kind and by mankind, indomitable, perpetually warred
|
|
upon and himself waging perpetual war, his development was rapid and
|
|
one-sided. This was no soil for kindliness and affection to blossom
|
|
in. Of such things he had not the faintest glimmering. The code he
|
|
learned was to obey the strong and to oppress the weak. Gray Beaver
|
|
was a god, and strong. Therefore White Fang obeyed him. But the dog
|
|
younger or smaller than himself was weak, a thing to be destroyed. His
|
|
development was in the direction of power. In order to face the
|
|
constant danger of hurt and even of destruction, his predatory and
|
|
protective faculties were unduly developed. He became quicker of
|
|
movement than the other dogs, swifter of foot, craftier, deadlier,
|
|
more lithe, more lean with iron-like muscle and sinew, more
|
|
enduring, more cruel, more ferocious, and more intelligent. He had
|
|
to become all these things, else he would not have held his own nor
|
|
survived the hostile environment in which he found himself.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER FOUR.
|
|
|
|
The Trail of the Gods.
|
|
|
|
IN THE FALL OF THE YEAR when the days were shortening and the bite
|
|
of the frost was coming into the air, White Fang got his chance for
|
|
liberty. For several days there had been a great hubbub in the
|
|
village. The summer camp was being dismantled, and the tribe, bag
|
|
and baggage, was preparing to go off to the fall hunting. White Fang
|
|
watched it all with eager eyes, and when the tepees began to come down
|
|
and the canoes were loading at the bank, he understood. Already the
|
|
canoes were departing, and some had disappeared down the river.
|
|
|
|
Quite deliberately he determined to stay behind. He waited his
|
|
opportunity to slink out of camp to the woods. Here in the running
|
|
stream where ice was beginning to form, he hid his trail. Then he
|
|
crawled into the heart of a dense thicket and waited. The time
|
|
passed by and he slept intermittently for hours. Then he was aroused
|
|
by Gray Beaver's voice calling him by name. There were other voices.
|
|
White Fang could hear Gray Beaver's squaw taking part in the search,
|
|
and Mit-sah, who was Gray Beaver's son.
|
|
|
|
White Fang trembled with fear, and though the impulse came to
|
|
crawl out of his hiding-place, he resisted it. After a time the voices
|
|
died away, and some time after that he crept out to enjoy the
|
|
success of his undertaking. Darkness was coming on, and for awhile
|
|
he played about among the trees, pleasuring his freedom. Then, and
|
|
quite suddenly, he became aware of loneliness. He sat down to
|
|
consider, listening to the silence of the forest and perturbed by
|
|
it. That nothing moved nor sounded, seemed ominous. He felt the
|
|
lurking of danger, unseen and unguessed. He was suspicious of the
|
|
looming bulks of the trees and of the dark shadows that might
|
|
conceal all manner of perilous things.
|
|
|
|
Then it was cold. Here was no warm side of a tepee against which
|
|
to snuggle. The frost was in his feet, and he kept lifting first one
|
|
forefoot and then the other. He curved his bushy tail around to
|
|
cover them, and at the same time he saw a vision. There was nothing
|
|
strange about it. Upon his inward sight was impressed a succession
|
|
of memory-pictures. He saw the camp again, the tepees, and the blaze
|
|
of the fires. He heard the shrill voices of the women, the gruff
|
|
basses of the men, and the snarling of the dogs. He was hungry, and he
|
|
remembered pieces of meat and fish that had been thrown him. Here
|
|
was no meat, nothing but a threatening and inedible silence.
|
|
|
|
His bondage had softened him. Irresponsibility had weakened him.
|
|
He had forgotten how to shift for himself. The night yawned about him.
|
|
His senses, accustomed to the hum and bustle of the camp, used to
|
|
the continuous impact of sights and sounds, were now left idle.
|
|
There was nothing to do, nothing to see nor hear. They strained to
|
|
catch some interruption of the silence and immobility of nature.
|
|
They were appalled by inaction and by the feel of something terrible
|
|
impending.
|
|
|
|
He gave a great start of fright. A colossal and formless something
|
|
was rushing across the field of his vision. It was a tree-shadow flung
|
|
by the moon, from whose face the clouds had been brushed away.
|
|
Reassured, he whimpered softly; then he suppressed the whimper for
|
|
fear that it might attract the attention of the lurking dangers.
|
|
|
|
A tree, contracting in the cool of the night, made a loud noise.
|
|
It was directly above him. He yelped in his fright. A panic seized
|
|
him, and he ran madly toward the village. He knew an overpowering
|
|
desire for the protection and companionship of man. In his nostrils
|
|
was the smell of the campsmoke. In his ears the camp sounds and
|
|
cries were ringing loud. He passed out of the forest and into the
|
|
moonlit open where were no shadows nor darknesses. But no village
|
|
greeted his eyes. He had forgotten. The village had gone away.
|
|
|
|
His wild flight ceased abruptly. There was no place to which to
|
|
flee. He slunk forlornly through the deserted camp, smelling the
|
|
rubbish-heaps and the discarded rags and tags of the gods. He would
|
|
have been glad for the rattle of the stones about him, flung by an
|
|
angry squaw, glad for the hand of Gray Beaver descending upon him in
|
|
wrath; while he would have welcomed with delight Lip-lip and the whole
|
|
snarling, cowardly pack.
|
|
|
|
He came to where Gray Beaver's tepee had stood. In the center of the
|
|
space it had occupied, he sat down. He pointed his nose at the moon.
|
|
His throat was afflicted with rigid spasms, his mouth opened, and in a
|
|
heartbroken cry bubbled up his loneliness and fear, his grief for
|
|
Kiche, all his past sorrows and miseries as well as his apprehension
|
|
of sufferings and dangers to come. It was the long wolf-howl,
|
|
full-throated and mournful, the first howl he had ever uttered.
|
|
|
|
The coming of daylight dispelled his fears, but increased his
|
|
loneliness. The naked earth, which so shortly before had been so
|
|
populous, thrust his loneliness more forcibly upon him. It did not
|
|
take him long to make up his mind. He plunged into the forest and
|
|
followed the river bank down the stream. All day he ran. He did not
|
|
rest. He seemed made to run on forever. His iron-like body ignored
|
|
fatigue. And even after fatigue came, his heritage of endurance braced
|
|
him to endless endeavor and enabled him to drive his complaining
|
|
body onward.
|
|
|
|
Where the river swung in against precipitous bluffs, he climbed
|
|
the high mountains behind. Rivers and streams that entered the main
|
|
river he forded or swam. Often he took to the rim-ice that was
|
|
beginning to form, and more than once he crashed through and struggled
|
|
for life in the icy current. Always he was on the lookout for the
|
|
trail of the gods where it might leave the river and proceed inland.
|
|
|
|
White Fang was intelligent beyond the average of his kind; yet his
|
|
mental vision was not wide enough to embrace the other bank of the
|
|
Mackenzie. What if the trail of the gods led out on that side? It
|
|
never entered his head. Later on, when he had traveled more and
|
|
grown older and wiser and come to know more of trails and rivers, it
|
|
might be that he could grasp and apprehend such a possibility. But
|
|
that mental power was yet in the future. Just now he ran blindly,
|
|
his own bank of the Mackenzie alone entering into his calculations.
|
|
|
|
All night he ran, blundering in the darkness into mishaps and
|
|
obstacles that delayed but did not daunt. By the middle of the
|
|
second day he had been running continuously for thirty hours, and
|
|
the iron of his flesh was giving out. It was the endurance of his mind
|
|
that kept him going. He had not eaten in forty hours, and he was
|
|
weak with hunger. The repeated drenchings in the icy water had
|
|
likewise had their effect on him. His handsome coat was draggled.
|
|
The broad pads of his feet were bruised and bleeding. He had begun
|
|
to limp and this limp increased with the hours. To make it worse,
|
|
the light of the sky was obscured and snow began to fall- a raw,
|
|
moist, melting, clinging snow, slippery under foot, that hid him
|
|
from the landscape he traversed, and that covered over the
|
|
inequalities of the ground so that the way of his feet was more
|
|
difficult and painful.
|
|
|
|
Gray Beaver had intended camping that night on the far bank of the
|
|
Mackenzie, for it was in that direction that the hunting lay. But on
|
|
the near bank, shortly after dark, a moose, coming down to drink,
|
|
had been espied by Kloo-kooch, who was Gray Beaver's squaw. Now, had
|
|
not the moose come down to drink, had not Mit-sah been steering out of
|
|
the course because of the snow, had not Kloo-kooch sighted the
|
|
moose, and had not Gray Beaver killed it with a lucky shot from his
|
|
rifle, all subsequent things would have happened differently. Gray
|
|
Beaver would not have camped on the near side of the Mackenzie, and
|
|
White Fang would have passed by and gone on, either to die or to
|
|
find his way to his wild brothers and become one of them- a wolf to
|
|
the end of his days.
|
|
|
|
Night had fallen. The snow was flying more thickly, and White
|
|
Fang, whimpering softly to himself as he stumbled and limped along,
|
|
came upon a fresh trail in the snow. So fresh was it that he knew it
|
|
immediately for what it was. Whining with eagerness, he followed
|
|
back from the river bank and in among the trees. The camp-sounds
|
|
came to his ears. He saw the blaze of the fire, Kloo-kooch cooking,
|
|
and Gray Beaver squatting on his hams and munching a chunk of raw
|
|
tallow. There was fresh meat in camp!
|
|
|
|
White Fang expected a beating. He crouched and bristled a little
|
|
at the thought of it. Then he went forward again. He feared and
|
|
disliked the beating he knew to be waiting for him. But he knew,
|
|
further, that the comfort of the fire would be his, the protection
|
|
of the gods, the companionship of the dogs- the last, a
|
|
companionship of enmity, but none the less a companionship and
|
|
satisfying to his gregarious needs.
|
|
|
|
He came cringing and crawling into the firelight. Gray Beaver saw
|
|
him and stopped munching his tallow. White Fang crawled slowly,
|
|
cringing and groveling in the abjectness of his abasement and
|
|
submission. He crawled straight toward Gray Beaver, every inch of
|
|
his progress becoming slower and more painful. At last he lay at the
|
|
master's feet, into whose possession he now surrendered himself,
|
|
voluntarily, body and soul. Of his own choice he came in to sit by
|
|
man's fire and to be ruled by him. White Fang trembled, waiting for
|
|
the punishment to fall upon him. There was a movement of the hand
|
|
above him. He cringed involuntarily under the expected blow. It did
|
|
not fall. He stole a glance upward. Gray Beaver was breaking the
|
|
lump of tallow in half! Gray Beaver was offering him one piece of
|
|
the tallow! Very gently and somewhat suspiciously, he first smelled
|
|
the tallow and then proceeded to eat it. Gray Beaver ordered meat to
|
|
be brought to him, and guarded him from the other dogs while he ate.
|
|
After that, grateful and content, White Fang lay at Gray Beaver's
|
|
feet, gazing at the fire that warmed him, blinking and dozing,
|
|
secure in the knowledge that the morrow would find him, not
|
|
wandering forlorn through bleak forest-stretches, but in the camp of
|
|
the man-animals, with the gods to whom he had given himself and upon
|
|
whom he was now dependent.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER FIVE.
|
|
|
|
The Covenant.
|
|
|
|
WHEN DECEMBER WAS well along, Gray Beaver went on a journey up the
|
|
Mackenzie River. Mit-sah and Kloo-kooch went with him. One sled he
|
|
drove himself, drawn by dogs he had traded for or borrowed. A second
|
|
and smaller sled was driven by Mit-sah, and to this was harnessed a
|
|
team of puppies. It was more of a toy affair than anything else, yet
|
|
it was the delight of Mit-sah, who felt that he was beginning to do
|
|
a man's work in the world. Also, he was learning to drive dogs and
|
|
to train dogs; while the puppies themselves were being broken in to
|
|
the harness. Furthermore, the sled was of some service, for it carried
|
|
nearly two hundred pounds of outfit and food.
|
|
|
|
White Fang had seen the camp-dogs toiling in the harness, so that he
|
|
did not resent overmuch the first placing of the harness upon himself.
|
|
About his neck was put a moss-stuffed collar, which was connected by
|
|
two pulling-traces to a strap that passed around his chest and over
|
|
his back. It was to this that was fastened the long rope by which he
|
|
pulled at the sled.
|
|
|
|
There were seven puppies in the team. The others had been born
|
|
earlier in the year and were nine and ten months old, while White Fang
|
|
was only eight months old. Each dog was fastened to the sled by a
|
|
single rope. No two ropes were of the same length, while the
|
|
difference in length between any two ropes was at least that of a
|
|
dog's body. Every rope was brought to a ring at the front end of the
|
|
sled. The sled itself was without runners, being a birch-bark
|
|
toboggan, with upturned forward end to keep it from ploughing under
|
|
the snow. This construction enabled the weight of the sled and load to
|
|
be distributed over the largest snow-surface; for the snow as
|
|
crystal-powder and very soft. Observing the same principle of widest
|
|
distribution of weight, the dogs at the ends of their ropes radiated
|
|
fan-fashion from the nose of the sled, so that no dog trod in
|
|
another's footsteps.
|
|
|
|
There was, furthermore, another virtue in the fan-formation. The
|
|
ropes of varying length prevented the dogs' attacking from the rear
|
|
those that ran in front of them. For a dog to attack another, it would
|
|
have to turn upon one at a shorter rope. In which case it would find
|
|
itself facing the whip of the driver. But the most peculiar virtue
|
|
of all lay in the fact that the dog that strove to attack one in front
|
|
of him must pull the sled faster, and that the faster the sled
|
|
traveled, the faster could the dog attacked run away. Thus the dog
|
|
behind could never catch up with the one in front. The faster he
|
|
ran, the faster ran the one he was after, and the faster ran all the
|
|
dogs. Incidentally, the sled went faster, and thus, by cunning
|
|
indiscretion, did man increase his mastery over the beasts.
|
|
|
|
Mit-sah resembled his father, much of whose gray wisdom he
|
|
possessed. In the past he had observed Lip-lip's persecution of
|
|
White Fang; but at that time Lip-lip was another man's dog, and
|
|
Mit-sah had never dared more than to shy an occasional stone at him.
|
|
But now Lip-lip was his dog, and he proceeded to wreak his vengeance
|
|
upon him by putting him at the end of the longest rope. This made
|
|
Lip-lip the leader, and was apparently an honor; but in reality it
|
|
took away from him all honor, and instead of being bully and master of
|
|
the pack, he now found himself hated and persecuted by the pack.
|
|
|
|
Because he ran at the end of the longest rope, the dogs had always
|
|
the view of him running away before them. All that they saw of him was
|
|
his bushy tail and fleeing hind legs- a view far less ferocious and
|
|
intimidating than his bristling mane and gleaming fangs. Also, dogs
|
|
being so constituted in their mental ways, the sight of him running
|
|
away gave desire to run after him and a feeling that he ran away
|
|
from them.
|
|
|
|
The moment the sled started, the team took after Lip-lip in a
|
|
chase that extended throughout the day. At first he had been prone
|
|
to turn upon his pursuers, jealous of his dignity and wrathful; but at
|
|
such times Mit-sah would throw the stinging lash of the thirty-foot
|
|
cariboo-gut whip into his face and compel him to turn tail and run on.
|
|
Lip-lip might face the pack, but he could not face that whip, and
|
|
all that was left to do was to keep his long rope taut and his
|
|
flanks ahead of the teeth of his mates.
|
|
|
|
But a still greater cunning lurked in the recesses of the Indian
|
|
mind. To give point to unending pursuit of the leader, Mit-sah favored
|
|
him over the other dogs. These favors aroused in them jealousy and
|
|
hatred. In their presence Mit-sah would give him meat and would give
|
|
it to him only. This was maddening to them. They would rage around
|
|
just outside the throwing distance of the whip, while Lip-lip devoured
|
|
the meat and Mit-sah protected him. And when there was no meat to
|
|
give, Mit-sah would keep the team at a distance and make believe to
|
|
give meat to Lip-lip.
|
|
|
|
White Fang took kindly to the work. He had traveled a greater
|
|
distance than the other dogs in the yielding of himself to the rule of
|
|
the gods, and he had learned more thoroughly the futility of
|
|
opposing their will. In addition, the persecution he had suffered from
|
|
the pack had made the pack less to him in the scheme of things, and
|
|
man more. He had not learned to be dependent on his kind for
|
|
companionship. Besides, Kiche was well-nigh forgotten; and the chief
|
|
outlet of expression that remained to him was in the allegiance he
|
|
tendered the gods he had accepted as masters. So he worked hard,
|
|
learned discipline, and was obedient. Faithfulness and willingness
|
|
characterized his toil. These are essential traits of the wolf and the
|
|
wild-dog when they have become domesticated, and these traits White
|
|
Fang possessed in unusual measure.
|
|
|
|
A companionship did exist between White Fang and the other dogs, but
|
|
it was one of warfare and enmity. He had never learned to play with
|
|
them. He knew only how to fight, and fight with them he did, returning
|
|
to them a hundred-fold the snaps and slashes they had given him in the
|
|
days when Lip-lip was leader of the pack. But Lip-lip was no longer
|
|
leader- except when he fled away before his mates at the end of his
|
|
rope, the sled bounding along behind. In camp he kept close to Mit-sah
|
|
or Gray Beaver or Kloo-kooch. He did not venture away from the gods,
|
|
for now the fangs of all dogs were against him, and he tasted to the
|
|
dregs the persecution that had been White Fang's.
|
|
|
|
With the overthrow of Lip-lip, White Fang could have become leader
|
|
of the pack. But he was too morose and solitary for that. He merely
|
|
thrashed his teammates. Otherwise he ignored them. They got out of his
|
|
way when he came along; nor did the boldest of them ever dare to rob
|
|
him of his meat. On the contrary, they devoured their own meat
|
|
hurriedly, for fear that he would take it away from them. White Fang
|
|
knew the law well: to oppress the weak and obey the strong. He ate his
|
|
share of meat as rapidly as he could. And then woe the dog that had
|
|
not yet finished! A snarl and a flash of fangs, and that dog would
|
|
wail his indignation to the uncomforting stars while White Fang
|
|
finished his portion for him.
|
|
|
|
Every little while, however, one dog or another would flame up in
|
|
revolt and be promptly subdued. Thus White Fang was kept in
|
|
training. He was jealous of the isolation in which he kept himself
|
|
in the midst of the pack, and he fought often to maintain it. But such
|
|
fights were of brief duration. He was too quick for the others. They
|
|
were slashed open and bleeding before they knew what had happened,
|
|
were whipped almost before they had begun to fight.
|
|
|
|
As rigid as the sled-discipline of the gods, was the discipline
|
|
maintained by White Fang amongst his fellows. He never allowed them
|
|
any latitude. He compelled them to an unremitting respect for him.
|
|
They might do as they please amongst themselves. That was no concern
|
|
of his. But it was his concern that they leave him alone in his
|
|
isolation, get out of his way when he elected to walk among them,
|
|
and at all times acknowledge his mastery over them. A hint of
|
|
stiff-leggedness on their part, a lifted lip or a bristle of hair, and
|
|
he would be upon them, merciless and cruel, swiftly convincing them of
|
|
the error of their way.
|
|
|
|
He was a monstrous tyrant. His mastery was rigid as steel. He
|
|
oppressed the weak with a vengeance. Not for nothing had he been
|
|
exposed to the pitiless struggle for life in the days of his
|
|
cubhood, when his mother and he, alone and unaided, held their own and
|
|
survived in the ferocious environment of the Wild. And not for nothing
|
|
had he learned to walk softly when superior strength went by. He
|
|
oppressed the weak, but he respected the strong. And in the course
|
|
of the long journey with Gray Beaver he walked softly indeed amongst
|
|
the full-grown dogs in the camps of the strange man-animals they
|
|
encountered.
|
|
|
|
The months passed by. Still continued the journey of Gray Beaver.
|
|
White Fang's strength was developed by the long hours on the trail and
|
|
the steady toil at the sled; and it would have seemed that his
|
|
mental development was well-nigh complete. He had come to know quite
|
|
thoroughly the world in which he lived. His outlook was bleak and
|
|
materialistic. The world as he saw it was a fierce and brutal world, a
|
|
world without warmth, a world in which caresses and affection and
|
|
the bright sweetnesses of the spirit did not exist.
|
|
|
|
He had no affection for Gray Beaver. True, he was a god, but a
|
|
most savage god. White Fang was glad to acknowledge his lordship,
|
|
but it was a lordship based upon superior intelligence and brute
|
|
strength. There was something in the fibre of White Fang's being
|
|
that made this lordship a thing to be desired, else he would not
|
|
have come back from the Wild when he did to tender his allegiance.
|
|
There were deeps in his nature which had never been sounded. A kind
|
|
word, a caressing touch of the hand, on the part of Gray Beaver, might
|
|
have sounded these deeps; but Gray Beaver did not caress nor speak
|
|
kind words. It was not his way. His primacy was savage, and savagely
|
|
he ruled, administering justice with a club, punishing transgression
|
|
with the pain of a blow, and rewarding merit, not by kindness, but
|
|
by withholding a blow.
|
|
|
|
So White Fang knew nothing of the heaven a man's hand might
|
|
contain for him. Besides, he did not like the hands of the
|
|
man-animals. He was suspicious of them. It was true that they
|
|
sometimes gave meat, but more often they gave hurt. Hands were
|
|
things to keep away from. They hurled stones, wielded sticks and clubs
|
|
and whips, administered slaps and clouts, and, when they touched
|
|
him, were cunning to hurt with pinch and twist and wrench. In
|
|
strange villages he had encountered the hands of the children and
|
|
learned that they were cruel to hurt. Also, he had once nearly had
|
|
an eye poked out by a toddling papoose. From these experiences he
|
|
became suspicious of all children. He could not tolerate them. When
|
|
they came near with their ominous hands, he got up.
|
|
|
|
It was in a village at Great Slave Lake, that, in the course of
|
|
resenting the evil of the hands of the man-animals, he came to
|
|
modify the law that he had learned from Gray Beaver; namely, that
|
|
the unpardonable crime was to bite one of the gods. In this village,
|
|
after the custom of all dogs in all villages, White Fang went foraging
|
|
for food. A boy was chopping frozen moose-meat with an axe, and the
|
|
chips were flying in the snow. White Fang, sliding by in quest of
|
|
meat, stopped and began to eat the chips. He observed the boy lay down
|
|
the axe and take up a stout club. White Fang sprang clear, just in
|
|
time to escape the descending blow. The boy pursued him, and he, a
|
|
stranger in the village, fled between two tepees, to find himself
|
|
cornered against a high earth bank.
|
|
|
|
There was no escape for White Fang. The only way out was between the
|
|
two tepees, and this the boy guarded. Holding the club prepared to
|
|
strike, he drew in on his cornered quarry. White Fang was furious.
|
|
He faced the boy bristling and snarling, his sense of justice
|
|
outraged. He knew the law of forage. All the wastage of meat, such
|
|
as the frozen chips, belonged to the dog that found it. He had done no
|
|
wrong, broken no law, yet here was this boy preparing to give him a
|
|
beating. White Fang scarcely knew what happened. He did it in a
|
|
surge of rage. And he did so quickly that the boy did not know,
|
|
either. All the boy knew was that he had in some unaccountable way
|
|
been overturned into the snow, and that his club-hand had been
|
|
ripped wide open by White Fang's teeth.
|
|
|
|
But White Fang knew that he had broken the law of the gods. He had
|
|
driven his teeth into the sacred flesh of one of them, and could
|
|
expect nothing but a most terrible punishment. He fled away to Gray
|
|
Beaver, behind whose protecting legs he crouched when the bitten boy
|
|
and the boy's family came, demanding vengeance. But they went away
|
|
with vengeance unsatisfied. Gray Beaver defended White Fang. So did
|
|
Mit-sah and Kloo-kooch. White Fang, listening to the wordy war and
|
|
watching the angry gestures, knew that his act was justified. And so
|
|
it came that he learned there were gods and gods. There were his gods,
|
|
and there were other gods, and between them there was a difference.
|
|
Justice or injustice, it was all the same, he must take all things
|
|
from the hands of his own gods. But he was not compelled to take
|
|
injustice from the other gods. It was his privilege to resent it
|
|
with his teeth. And this also was a law of the gods.
|
|
|
|
Before the day was out, White Fang was to learn more about this law.
|
|
Mit-sah, alone, gathering firewood in the forest, encountered the
|
|
boy that had been bitten. With him were other boys. Hot words
|
|
passed. Then all the boys attacked Mit-sah. It was going hard with
|
|
him. Blows were raining upon him from all sides. White Fang looked
|
|
on at first. This was an affair of the gods, and no concern of his.
|
|
Then he realized that this was Mit-sah, one of his own particular
|
|
gods, who was being maltreated. It was no reasoned impulse that made
|
|
White Fang do what he then did. A mad rush of anger sent him leaping
|
|
in amongst the combatants. Five minutes later the landscape was
|
|
covered with fleeing boys, many of whom dripped blood upon the snow in
|
|
token that White Fang's teeth had not been idle. When Mit-sah told his
|
|
story in camp, Gray Beaver ordered meat to be given to White Fang.
|
|
He ordered much meat to be given, and White Fang, gorged and sleepy by
|
|
the fire, knew that the law had received its verification.
|
|
|
|
It was in line with these experiences that White Fang came to
|
|
learn the law of property and the duty of the defense of property.
|
|
From the protection of his god's body to the protection of his god's
|
|
possessions was a step, and this step he made. What was his god's
|
|
was to be defended against all the world- even to the extent of biting
|
|
other gods. Not only was such an act sacrilegious in its nature, but
|
|
it was fraught with peril. The gods were all-powerful, and a dog was
|
|
no match against them; yet White Fang learned to face them, fiercely
|
|
belligerent and unafraid. Duty rose above fear, and thieving gods
|
|
learned to leave Gray Beaver's property alone.
|
|
|
|
One thing, in this connection, White Fang quickly learned, and
|
|
that was that a thieving god was usually a cowardly god and prone to
|
|
run away at the sounding of the alarm. Also, he learned that but brief
|
|
time elapsed between his sounding of the alarm and Gray Beaver's
|
|
coming to his aid. He came to know that it was not fear of him that
|
|
drove the thief away, but fear of Gray Beaver. White Fang did not give
|
|
the alarm by barking. He never barked. His method was to drive
|
|
straight at the intruder, and to sink his teeth in if he could.
|
|
Because he was morose and solitary, having nothing to do with the
|
|
other dogs, he was unusually fitted to guard his master's property;
|
|
and in this he was encouraged and trained by Gray Beaver. One result
|
|
of this was to make White Fang more ferocious and indomitable, and
|
|
more solitary.
|
|
|
|
The months went by, binding stronger and stronger the covenant
|
|
between dog and man. This was the ancient covenant that the first wolf
|
|
that came in from the Wild entered into with man. And, like all
|
|
succeeding wolves and wild dogs that had done likewise, White Fang
|
|
worked the covenant out for himself. The terms were simple. For the
|
|
possession of a flesh-and-blood god, he exchanged his own liberty.
|
|
Food and fire, protection and companionship, were some of the things
|
|
he received from the god. In return he guarded the god's property,
|
|
defended his body, worked for him, and obeyed him.
|
|
|
|
The possession of a god implies service. White Fang's was a
|
|
service of duty and awe, but not of love. He did not know what love
|
|
was. He had no experience of love. Kiche was a remote memory. Besides,
|
|
not only had he abandoned the Wild and his kind when he gave himself
|
|
up to man, but the terms of the covenant were such that if he ever met
|
|
Kiche again he would not desert his god to go with her. His allegiance
|
|
to man seemed somehow a law of his being greater than the love of
|
|
liberty, of kind and kin.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER SIX.
|
|
|
|
The Famine.
|
|
|
|
THE SPRING OF THE YEAR was at hand when Gray Beaver finished his
|
|
long journey. It was April, and White Fang was a year old when he
|
|
pulled into the home village and was loosed from the harness by
|
|
Mit-sah. Though a long way from his full growth, White Fang, next to
|
|
Lip-lip, was the largest yearling in the village. Both from his
|
|
father, the wolf, and from Kiche, he had inherited stature and
|
|
strength, and already he was measuring up alongside the full-grown
|
|
dogs. But he had not yet grown compact. His body was slender and
|
|
rangy, and his strength more stringy than massive. His coat was the
|
|
true wolf-gray, and to all appearances he was true wolf himself. The
|
|
quarter-strain of dog he had inherited from Kiche had left no mark
|
|
on him physically, though it played its part in his mental make-up.
|
|
|
|
He wandered through the village, recognizing with staid satisfaction
|
|
the various gods he had known before the long journey. Then there were
|
|
the dogs, puppies growing up like himself, and grown dogs that did not
|
|
look so large and formidable as the memory-pictures he retained of
|
|
them. Also, he stood less in fear of them than formerly, stalking
|
|
among them with a certain careless case that was as new to him as it
|
|
was enjoyable.
|
|
|
|
There was Baseek, a grizzled old fellow that in his younger days had
|
|
but to uncover his fangs to send White Fang cringing and crouching
|
|
to the right-about. From him White Fang had learned much of his own
|
|
insignificance; and from him he was now to learn much of the change
|
|
and development that had taken place in himself. While Baseek had been
|
|
growing weaker with age, White Fang had been growing stronger with
|
|
youth.
|
|
|
|
It was at the cutting-up of a moose, fresh-killed, that White Fang
|
|
learned of the changed relations in which he stood to the dog-world.
|
|
He had got for himself a hoof and part of the shin-bone, to which
|
|
quite a bit of meat was attached. Withdrawn from the immediate
|
|
scramble of the other dogs- in fact, out of sight behind a thicket- he
|
|
was devouring his prize, when Baseek rushed in upon him. Before he
|
|
knew what he was doing, he had slashed the intruder twice and sprung
|
|
clear. Baseek was surprised by the other's temerity and swiftness of
|
|
attack. He stood, gazing stupidly across at White Fang, the raw, red
|
|
shin-bone between them.
|
|
|
|
Baseek was old, and already he had come to know the increasing valor
|
|
of the dogs it had been his wont to bully. Bitter experiences these,
|
|
which, perforce, he swallowed, calling upon all his wisdom to cope
|
|
with them. In the old days, he would have sprung upon White Fang in
|
|
a fury of righteous wrath. But now his waning powers would not
|
|
permit such a course. He bristled fiercely and looked ominously across
|
|
the shin-bone at White Fang. And White Fang, resurrecting quite a deal
|
|
of the old awe, seemed to wilt and to shrink in upon himself and
|
|
grow small, as he cast about in his mind for a way to beat a retreat
|
|
not too inglorious.
|
|
|
|
And right here Baseek erred. Had he contented himself with looking
|
|
fierce and ominous, all would have been well. White Fang, on the verge
|
|
of retreat, would have retreated, leaving the meat to him. But
|
|
Baseek did not wait. He considered the victory already his and stepped
|
|
forward to the meat. As he bent his head carelessly to smell it, White
|
|
Fang bristled slightly. Even then it was not too late for Baseek to
|
|
retrieve the situation. Had he merely stood over the meat, head up and
|
|
glowering, White Fang would ultimately have slunk away. But the
|
|
fresh meat was strong in Baseek's nostrils, and greed urged him to
|
|
take a bite of it.
|
|
|
|
This was too much for White Fang. Fresh upon his months of mastery
|
|
over his own teammates, it was beyond his self-control to stand idly
|
|
by while another devoured the meat that belonged to him. He struck,
|
|
after his custom, without warning. With the first slash, Baseek's
|
|
right ear was ripped into ribbons. He was astounded at the
|
|
suddenness of it. But more things, and most grievous ones, were
|
|
happening with equal suddenness. He was knocked off his feet. His
|
|
throat was bitten. While he was struggling to his feet the young dog
|
|
sank teeth twice into his shoulder. The swiftness of it was
|
|
bewildering. He made a futile rush at White Fang, clipping the empty
|
|
air with an outraged snap. The next moment his nose was laid open
|
|
and he was staggering backward away from the meat.
|
|
|
|
The situation was now reversed. White Fang stood over the shin-bone,
|
|
bristling and menacing, while Baseek stood a little way off, preparing
|
|
to retreat. He dared not risk a fight with this young lightning-flash,
|
|
again he knew, and more bitterly, the enfeeblement of oncoming age.
|
|
His attempt to maintain his dignity was heroic. Calmly turning his
|
|
back upon young dog and shin-bone, as though both were beneath his
|
|
notice and unworthy of consideration, he stalked grandly away. Nor,
|
|
until well out of sight, did he stop to lick his bleeding wounds.
|
|
|
|
The effect on White Fang was to give him a greater faith in himself,
|
|
and a greater pride. He walked less softly among the grown dogs; his
|
|
attitude toward them was less compromising. Not that he went out of
|
|
his way looking for trouble. Far from it. But upon his way he demanded
|
|
consideration. He stood upon his right to go his way unmolested and to
|
|
give trail to no dog. He had to be taken into account, that was all.
|
|
He was no longer to be disregarded and ignored, as was the lot of
|
|
the puppies that were his teammates. They got out of the way, gave
|
|
trail to the grown dogs, and gave up meat to them under compulsion.
|
|
But White Fang, uncompanionable, solitary, morose, scarcely looking to
|
|
right or left, redoubtable, forbidding of aspect, remote and alien,
|
|
was accepted as an equal by his puzzled elders. They quickly learned
|
|
to leave him alone, neither venturing hostile acts nor making
|
|
overtures of friendliness. If they left him alone, he left them alone-
|
|
a state of affairs that they found, after a few encounters, to be
|
|
preeminently desirable.
|
|
|
|
In midsummer White Fang had an experience. Trotting along in his
|
|
silent way to investigate a new tepee which had been erected on the
|
|
edge of the village while he was away with the hunters after moose, he
|
|
came full upon Kiche. He paused and looked at her. He remembered her
|
|
vaguely, but he remembered her, and that was more than could be said
|
|
for her. She lifted her lip at him in the old snarl of menace, and his
|
|
memory became clear. His forgotten cubhood, all that was associated
|
|
with that familiar snarl, rushed back to him. Before he had known
|
|
the gods, she had been to him the centre-pin of the universe. The
|
|
old familiar feelings of that time came back upon him, surged up
|
|
within him. He bounded toward her joyously, and she met him with
|
|
shrewd fangs that laid his cheek open to the bone. He did not
|
|
understand. He backed away, bewildered and puzzled.
|
|
|
|
But it was not Kiche's fault. A wolf-mother was not made to remember
|
|
her cubs of a year or so before. So she did not remember White Fang.
|
|
He was a strange animal, an intruder; and her present litter of
|
|
puppies gave her the right to resent such intrusions.
|
|
|
|
One of the puppies sprawled up to White Fang. They were
|
|
half-brothers, only they did not know it. White Fang sniffed the puppy
|
|
curiously, whereupon Kiche rushed upon him, gashing his face a
|
|
second time. He backed farther away. All the old memories and
|
|
associations died down again and passed into the grave from which they
|
|
had been resurrected. He had learned to get along without her. Her
|
|
meaning was forgotten. There was no place for her in his scheme of
|
|
things, as there was no place for him in hers.
|
|
|
|
He was still standing, stupid and bewildered, the memories
|
|
forgotten, wondering what it was all about, when Kiche attacked him
|
|
a third time, intent on driving him away altogether from the vicinity.
|
|
And White Fang allowed himself to be driven away. This was a female of
|
|
his kind, and it was a law of his kind that the males must not fight
|
|
with females. He did not know anything about this law, for it was no
|
|
generalization of the mind, not a something acquired by experience
|
|
in the world. He knew it was a secret prompting, as an urge of
|
|
instinct- of the same instinct that made him howl at the moon and
|
|
stars of nights and that made him fear death and the unknown.
|
|
|
|
The months went by. White Fang grew stronger, heavier, and more
|
|
compact, while his character was developing along the lines laid
|
|
down by his heredity and his environment. His heredity was a
|
|
life-stuff that may be likened to clay. It possessed many
|
|
possibilities, was capable of being moulded into many different forms.
|
|
Environment served to model the clay, to give it a particular form.
|
|
Thus, had White Fang never come in to the fires of man, the Wild would
|
|
have moulded him into a true wolf. But the gods had given him a
|
|
different environment, and he was moulded into a dog that was rather
|
|
wolfish, but that was a dog and not a wolf.
|
|
|
|
And so, according to the clay of his nature and the pressure of
|
|
his surroundings, his character was being moulded into a certain
|
|
particular shape. There was no escaping it. He was becoming more
|
|
morose, more uncompanionable, more solitary, more ferocious; while the
|
|
dogs were learning more and more that it was better to be at peace
|
|
with him than at war, and Gray Beaver was coming to prize him more
|
|
greatly with the passage of each day.
|
|
|
|
White Fang, seeming to sum up strength in all his qualities,
|
|
nevertheless suffered from one besetting weakness. He could not
|
|
stand being laughed at. The laughter of men was a hateful thing.
|
|
They might laugh among themselves about anything they pleased except
|
|
himself, and he did not mind. But the moment laughter was turned
|
|
upon him he would fly into a most terrible rage. Grave, dignified,
|
|
sombre, a laugh made him frantic to ridiculousness. It so outraged him
|
|
and upset him that for hours he would behave like a demon. And woe
|
|
to the dog that at such times ran foul of him. He knew the law too
|
|
well to take it out on Gray Beaver; behind Gray Beaver were a club and
|
|
a god-head. But behind the dogs there was nothing but space, and
|
|
into this space they fled when White Fang came on the scene, made
|
|
mad by laughter.
|
|
|
|
In the third year of his life there came a great famine to the
|
|
Mackenzie Indians. In the summer the fish failed. In the winter the
|
|
caribou forsook their accustomed track. Moose were scarce, the rabbits
|
|
almost disappeared, hunting and preying animals perished. Denied their
|
|
usual food-supply, weakened by hunger, they fell upon and devoured one
|
|
another. Only the strong survived. White Fang's gods were also hunting
|
|
animals. The old and the weak of them died of hunger. There was
|
|
wailing in the village, where the women and children went without in
|
|
order that what little they had might go into the bellies of the
|
|
lean and hollow-eyed hunters who trod the forest in the vain pursuit
|
|
of meat.
|
|
|
|
To such extremity were the gods driven that they ate the soft-tanned
|
|
leather of their moccasins and mittens, while the dogs ate the
|
|
harnesses off their backs and the very whip-lashes. Also, the dogs ate
|
|
one another, and also the gods ate the dogs. The weakest and the
|
|
more worthless were eaten first. The dogs that still lived, looked
|
|
on and understood. A few of the boldest and wisest forsook the fires
|
|
of the gods, which had now become a shambles, and fled into the
|
|
forest, where, in the end, they starved to death or were eaten by
|
|
wolves.
|
|
|
|
In this time of misery, White Fang, too, stole away into the
|
|
woods. He was better fitted for the life than the other dogs, for he
|
|
had the training of his cubhood to guide him. Especially adept did
|
|
he become in stalking small living things. He would lie concealed
|
|
for hours, following every movement of a cautious tree-squirrel,
|
|
waiting, with a patience as huge as the hunger he suffered from, until
|
|
the squirrel ventured out upon the ground. Even then, White Fang was
|
|
not premature. He waited until he was sure of striking before the
|
|
squirrel could gain a tree-refuge. Then, and not until then, would
|
|
he flash from his hiding-place, a gray projectile, incredibly swift,
|
|
never failing its mark- the fleeing squirrel that fled not fast
|
|
enough.
|
|
|
|
Successful as he was with squirrels, there was one difficulty that
|
|
prevented him from living and growing fat on them. There were not
|
|
enough squirrels. So he was driven to hunt still smaller things. So
|
|
acute did his hunger become at times that he was not above rooting out
|
|
wood-mice from their burrows in the ground. Nor did he scorn to do
|
|
battle with a weasel as hungry as himself and many times more
|
|
ferocious.
|
|
|
|
In the worst pinches of the famine he stole back to the fires of the
|
|
gods. But he did not go in to the fires. He lurked in the forest,
|
|
avoiding discovery and robbing the snares at the rare intervals when
|
|
game was caught. He even robbed Gray Beaver's snare of a rabbit at a
|
|
time when Gray Beaver staggered and tottered through the forest,
|
|
sitting down often to rest, because of weakness and shortness of
|
|
breath.
|
|
|
|
One day White Fang encountered a young wolf, gaunt and scrawny,
|
|
loose-jointed with famine. Had he not been hungry himself, White
|
|
Fang might have gone with him and eventually found his way into the
|
|
pack amongst his wild brethren. As it was, he ran the young wolf
|
|
down and killed and ate him.
|
|
|
|
Fortune seemed to favor him. Always, when hardest pressed for
|
|
food, he found something to kill. Again, when he was weak, it was
|
|
his luck that none of the larger preying animals chanced upon him.
|
|
Thus, he was strong from the two days' eating a lynx had afforded him,
|
|
when the hungry wolf-pack ran full tilt upon him. It was a long, cruel
|
|
chase, but he was better nourished than they, and in the end outran
|
|
them. And not only did he outrun them, but circling widely back on his
|
|
track, he gathered in one of his exhausted pursuers.
|
|
|
|
After that he left that part of the country and journeyed over to
|
|
the valley wherein he had been born. Here, in the old lair, he
|
|
encountered Kiche. Up to her old tricks, she, too, had fled the
|
|
inhospitable fires of the gods and gone back to her old refuge to give
|
|
birth to her young. Of this litter but one remained alive when White
|
|
Fang came upon the scene, and this one was not destined to live
|
|
long. Young life had little chance in such a famine.
|
|
|
|
Kiche's greeting of her grown son was anything but affectionate. But
|
|
White Fang did not mind. He had outgrown his mother. So he turned tail
|
|
philosophically and trotted on up the stream. At the forks he took the
|
|
turning to the left, where he found the lair of the lynx with whom his
|
|
mother and he had fought long before. Here, in the abandoned lair,
|
|
he settled down and rested for a day.
|
|
|
|
During the early summer, in the last days of the famine, he met
|
|
Lip-lip, who had likewise taken to the woods, where he had eked out
|
|
a miserable existence. White Fang came upon him unexpectedly. Trotting
|
|
in opposite directions along the base of a high bluff, they rounded
|
|
a corner of rock and found themselves face to face. They paused with
|
|
instant alarm, and looked at each other suspiciously.
|
|
|
|
White Fang was in splendid condition. His hunting had been good, and
|
|
for a week he had eaten his fill. He was even gorged from his latest
|
|
kill. But in the moment he looked at Lip-lip his hair rose on end
|
|
all along his back. It was an involuntary bristling on his part, the
|
|
physical state that in the past had always accompanied the mental
|
|
state produced in him by Lip-lip's bullying and persecution. As in the
|
|
past he had bristled and snarled at sight of Lip-lip, so now, and
|
|
automatically, he bristled and snarled. He did not waste any time. The
|
|
thing was done thoroughly and with despatch. Lip-lip essayed to back
|
|
away, but White Fang struck him hard, shoulder to shoulder. Lip-lip
|
|
was overthrown and rolled upon his back. White Fang's teeth drove into
|
|
the scrawny throat. There was a death-struggle, during which White
|
|
Fang walked around, stiff-legged and observant. Then he resumed his
|
|
course and trotted on along the base of the bluff.
|
|
|
|
One day, not long after, he came to the edge of the forest, where
|
|
a narrow stretch of open land sloped down to the Mackenzie. He had
|
|
been over this ground before, when it was bare, but now a village
|
|
occupied it. Still hidden amongst the trees, he paused to study the
|
|
situation. Sights and sounds and scents were familiar to him. It was
|
|
the old village changed to a new place. But sights and sounds and
|
|
smells were different from those he had last had when he fled away
|
|
from it. There was no whimpering nor wailing. Contented sounds saluted
|
|
his ear, and when he heard the angry voice of a woman he knew it to be
|
|
the anger that proceeds from a full stomach. And there was a smell
|
|
in the air of fish. There was food. The famine was gone. He came out
|
|
boldly from the forest and trotted into camp straight to Gray Beaver's
|
|
tepee. Gray Beaver was not there; but Kloo-kooch welcomed him with
|
|
glad cries and the whole of a fresh-caught fish, and he lay down to
|
|
wait Gray Beaver's coming.
|
|
|
|
PART FOUR.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER ONE.
|
|
|
|
The Enemy of his Kind.
|
|
|
|
HAD THERE BEEN IN White Fang's nature any possibility, no manner how
|
|
remote, of his ever coming to fraternize with his kind, such
|
|
possibility was irretrievably destroyed when he was made leader of the
|
|
sled-team. For now the dogs hated him- hated him for the extra meat
|
|
bestowed upon him by Mit-sah; hated him for all the real and fancied
|
|
favors he received; hated him for that he fled always at the head of
|
|
the team, his waving brush of a tail and his perpetually retreating
|
|
hind-quarters forever maddening their eyes.
|
|
|
|
And White Fang just as bitterly hated them back. Being sled-leader
|
|
was anything but gratifying to him. To be compelled to run away before
|
|
the yelling pack, every dog of which, for three years, he had thrashed
|
|
and mastered, was almost more than he could endure. But endure it he
|
|
must, or perish, and the life that was in him had no desire to perish.
|
|
The moment Mit-sah gave his order for the start, that moment the whole
|
|
team, with eager, savage cries, sprang forward at White Fang.
|
|
|
|
There was no defense for him. If he turned upon them, Mit-sah
|
|
would throw the stinging lash of the whip into his face. Only remained
|
|
to him to run away. He could not encounter that howling horde with his
|
|
tail and hind-quarters. These were scarcely fit weapons with which
|
|
to meet the many merciless fangs. So run away he did, violating his
|
|
own nature and pride with every leap he made, and leaping all day
|
|
long.
|
|
|
|
One cannot violate the promptings of one's nature without having
|
|
that nature recoil upon itself. Such a recoil is like that of a
|
|
hair, made to grow out from the body, turning unnaturally upon the
|
|
direction of its growth and growing into the body- a rankling,
|
|
festering thing of hurt. And so with White Fang. Every urge of his
|
|
being impelled him to spring upon the pack that cried at his heels,
|
|
but it was the will of the gods that this should not be; and behind
|
|
the will, to enforce it, was the whip of cariboo-gut with its biting
|
|
thirty-foot lash. So White Fang could only eat his heart in bitterness
|
|
and develop a hatred and malice commensurate with the ferocity and
|
|
indomitability of his nature.
|
|
|
|
If ever a creature was the enemy of its kind, White Fang was that
|
|
creature. He asked no quarter, gave none. He was continually marred
|
|
and scarred by the teeth of the pack, and as continually he left his
|
|
own marks upon the pack. Unlike most leaders, who, when camp was
|
|
made and the dogs were unhitched, huddled near to the gods for
|
|
protection, White Fang disdained such protection. He walked boldly
|
|
about the camp, inflicting punishment in the night for what he had
|
|
suffered in the day. In the time before he was made leader of the
|
|
team, the pack had learned to get out of his way. But now it was
|
|
different. Excited by the day-long pursuit of him, swayed
|
|
subconsciously by the insistent iteration on their brains of the sight
|
|
of him fleeting away, mastered by the feeling of mastery enjoyed all
|
|
day, the dogs could not bring themselves to give way to him. When he
|
|
appeared amongst them, there was always a squabble. His progress was
|
|
marked by snarl and snap and growl. The very atmosphere he breathed
|
|
was surcharged with hatred and malice, and this but served to increase
|
|
the hatred and malice without him.
|
|
|
|
When Mit-sah cried out his command for the team to stop, White
|
|
Fang obeyed. At first this caused trouble for the other dogs. All of
|
|
them would spring upon the hated leader, only to find the tables
|
|
turned. Behind him would be Mit-sah, the great whip singing in his
|
|
hand. So the dogs came to understand that when the team stopped by
|
|
order, White Fang was to be let alone. But when White Fang stopped
|
|
without orders, then it was allowed them to spring upon him and
|
|
destroy him if they could. After several experiences, White Fang never
|
|
stopped without orders. He learned quickly. It was in the nature of
|
|
things that he must learn quickly, if he were to survive the unusually
|
|
severe conditions under which life was vouchsafed him.
|
|
|
|
But the dogs could never learn the lesson to leave him alone in
|
|
camp. Each day, pursuing him and crying defiance at him, the lesson of
|
|
the previous night was erased, and that night would have to be learned
|
|
over again, to be as immediately forgotten. Besides, there was a
|
|
greater consistence in their dislike of him. They sensed between
|
|
themselves and him a difference of kind- cause sufficient in itself
|
|
for hostility. Like him, they were domesticated wolves. But they had
|
|
been domesticated for generations. Much of the Wild has been lost,
|
|
so that to them the Wild was the unknown, the terrible, the ever
|
|
menacing and ever warring. But to him, in appearance and action and
|
|
impulse, still clung the Wild. He symbolized it, was its
|
|
personification; so that when they showed their teeth to him they were
|
|
defending themselves against the powers of destruction that lurked
|
|
in the shadows of the forest and in the dark beyond the campfire.
|
|
|
|
But there was one lesson the dogs did learn, and that was to keep
|
|
together. White Fang was too terrible for any of them to face
|
|
single-handed. They met him with the mass-formation, otherwise he
|
|
would have killed them, one by one, in a night. As it was he never had
|
|
a chance to kill them. He might roll a dog off its feet, but the
|
|
pack would be upon him before he could follow up and deliver the
|
|
deadly throat-stroke. At the first hint of conflict, the whole team
|
|
drew together and faced him. The dogs had quarrels among themselves,
|
|
but these were forgotten when trouble was brewing with White Fang.
|
|
|
|
On the other hand, try as they would, they could not kill White
|
|
Fang. He was too quick for them, too formidable, too wise. He
|
|
avoided tight places and always backed out of it when they bade fair
|
|
to surround him. While, as for getting him off his feet, there was
|
|
no dog among them capable of doing the trick. His feet clung to the
|
|
earth with the same tenacity that he clung to life. For that matter,
|
|
life and footing were synonymous in this unending warfare with the
|
|
pack, and none knew it better than White Fang.
|
|
|
|
So he became the enemy of his kind, domesticated wolves that they
|
|
were, softened by the fires of man, weakened in the sheltering
|
|
shadow of man's strength. White Fang was bitter and implacable. The
|
|
clay of him was so moulded. He declared a vendetta against all dogs.
|
|
And so terribly did he live this vendetta that Gray Beaver, fierce
|
|
savage himself, could not but marvel at White Fang's ferocity.
|
|
Never, he swore, had there been the like of this animal; and the
|
|
Indians in strange villages swore likewise when they considered the
|
|
tale of his killings amongst their dogs.
|
|
|
|
When White Fang was nearly five years old, Gray Beaver took him on
|
|
another great journey, and long remembered was the havoc he worked
|
|
amongst the dogs of the many villages along the Mackenzie, across
|
|
the Rockies, and down the Porcupine to the Yukon. He revelled in the
|
|
vengeance he wreaked upon his kind. They were ordinary, unsuspecting
|
|
dogs. They were not prepared for his swiftness and directness, for his
|
|
attack without warning. They did not know him for what he was, a
|
|
lightning-flash of slaughter. They bristled up to him, stiff-legged
|
|
and challenging, while he, wasting no time on elaborate preliminaries,
|
|
snapping into action like a steel spring, was at their throats and
|
|
destroying them before they knew what was happening and while they
|
|
were yet in the throes of surprise.
|
|
|
|
He became an adept at fighting. He economized. He never wasted his
|
|
strength, never tussled. He was in too quickly for that, and, if he
|
|
missed, was out again too quickly. The dislike of the wolf for close
|
|
quarters was his to an unusual degree. He could not endure a prolonged
|
|
contact with another body. It smacked of danger. It made him
|
|
frantic. He must be away, free, on his own legs, touching no living
|
|
things. It was the Wild still clinging to him, asserting itself
|
|
through him. This feeling had been accentuated by the Ishmaelite
|
|
life he had led from his puppyhood. Danger lurked in contacts. It
|
|
was the trap, ever the trap, the fear of it lurking deep in the life
|
|
of him, woven in the fibre of him.
|
|
|
|
In consequence, the strange dogs he encountered had no chance
|
|
against him. He eluded their fangs. He got them, or got away,
|
|
himself untouched in either event. In the natural course of things
|
|
there were exceptions to this. There were times when several dogs,
|
|
pitching onto him, punished him before he could get away; and there
|
|
were times when a single dog scored deeply on him. But these were
|
|
accidents. In the main, so efficient a fighter had he become, he
|
|
went his way unscathed.
|
|
|
|
Another advantage he possessed was that of correctly judging time
|
|
and distance. Not that he did this consciously, however. He did not
|
|
calculate such things. It was all automatic. His eyes saw correctly,
|
|
and the nerves carried the vision correctly to his brain. The parts of
|
|
him were better adjusted than those of the average dog. They worked
|
|
together more smoothly and steadily. His was a better, far better,
|
|
nervous, mental, and muscular coordination. When his eyes conveyed
|
|
to his brain the moving image of an action, his brain, without
|
|
conscious effort, knew the space that limited that action and the time
|
|
required for its completion. Thus, he could avoid the leap of
|
|
another dog, or the drive of its fangs, and at the same moment could
|
|
seize the infinitesimal fraction of time in which to deliver his own
|
|
attack. Body and brain, his was a more perfected mechanism. Not that
|
|
he was to be praised for it. Nature had been more generous to him than
|
|
to the average animal, that was all.
|
|
|
|
It was in the summer that White Fang arrived at Fort Yukon. Gray
|
|
Beaver had crossed the great water-shed between the Mackenzie and
|
|
the Yukon in the late winter, and spent the spring in hunting among
|
|
the western outlying spurs of the Rockies. Then, after the break-up of
|
|
the ice on the Porcupine, he had built a canoe and paddled down that
|
|
stream to where it effected its junction with the Yukon just under the
|
|
Arctic Circle. Here stood the old Hudson's Bay Company fort; and
|
|
here were many Indians, much food, and unprecedented excitement. It
|
|
was the summer of 1898, and thousands of gold-hunters were going up
|
|
the Yukon to Dawson and the Klondike. Still hundreds of miles from
|
|
their goal, nevertheless many of them had been on the way for a
|
|
year, and the least any of them had traveled to get that far was
|
|
five thousand miles, while some had come from the other side of the
|
|
world.
|
|
|
|
Here Gray Beaver stopped. A whisper of the gold-rush had reached his
|
|
ears, and he had come with several bales of furs, and another of
|
|
gut-sewn mittens and moccasins. He would not have ventured so long a
|
|
trip had he not expected generous profits. But what he had expected
|
|
was nothing to what he realized. His wildest dream had not exceeded
|
|
a hundred percent profit; he made a thousand percent. And like a
|
|
true Indian, he settled down to trade carefully and slowly, even if it
|
|
took all summer and the rest of the winter to dispose of his goods.
|
|
|
|
It was at Fort Yukon that White Fang saw his first white men. As
|
|
compared with the Indians he had known, they were to him another
|
|
race of beings, a race of superior gods. They impressed him as
|
|
possessing superior power, and it is on power that god-head rests.
|
|
White Fang did not reason it out, did not in his mind make the sharp
|
|
generalization that the white gods were more powerful. It was a
|
|
feeling, nothing more, and yet none the less potent. As, in his
|
|
puppyhood, the looming bulks of the tepees, man-reared, had affected
|
|
him as manifestations of power, so was he affected now by the houses
|
|
and the huge fort all of massive logs. Here was power. Those white
|
|
gods were strong. They possessed greater mastery over matter than
|
|
the gods he had known, most powerful among which was Gray Beaver.
|
|
And yet Gray Beaver was a child-god among these white-skinned ones.
|
|
|
|
To be sure, White Fang only felt these things. He was not
|
|
conscious of them. Yet it is upon feeling, more often than thinking,
|
|
that animals act; and every act White Fang now performed was based
|
|
upon the feeling that the white men were the superior gods. In the
|
|
first place he was very suspicious of them. There was no telling
|
|
what unknown terrors were theirs, what unknown hurts they could
|
|
administer. He was curious to observe them, fearful of being noticed
|
|
by them. For the first few hours he was content with slinking around
|
|
and watching them from a safe distance. Then he saw that no harm
|
|
befell the dogs that were near to them, and he came in closer.
|
|
|
|
In turn, he was an object of great curiosity to them. His wolfish
|
|
appearance caught their eyes at once, and they pointed him out to
|
|
one another. This act of pointing put White Fang on his guard, and
|
|
when they tried to approach him he showed his teeth and backed away.
|
|
Not one succeeded in laying a hand on him, and it was well that they
|
|
did not.
|
|
|
|
White Fang soon learned that very few of these gods- not more than a
|
|
dozen- lived at this place. Every two or three days a steamer (another
|
|
and colossal manifestation of power) came in to the bank and stopped
|
|
for several hours. The white men came from off these steamers and went
|
|
away on them again. There seemed untold numbers of these white men. In
|
|
the first day or so, he saw more of them than he had seen Indians in
|
|
all life; and as the days went by they continued to come up the river,
|
|
stop, and then go on up the river and out of sight.
|
|
|
|
But if the white gods were all-powerful, their dogs did not amount
|
|
to much. This White Fang quickly discovered by mixing with those
|
|
that came ashore with their masters. They were of irregular shapes and
|
|
sizes. Some were short-legged- too short; others were long-legged- too
|
|
long. They had hair instead of fur, and a few had very little hair
|
|
at that. And none of them knew how to fight.
|
|
|
|
As an enemy of his kind, it was in White Fang's province to fight
|
|
with them. This he did, and he quickly achieved for them a mighty
|
|
contempt. They were soft and helpless, made much noise, and floundered
|
|
around clumsily, trying to accomplish by main strength what he
|
|
accomplished by dexterity and cunning. They rushed bellowing at him.
|
|
He sprang to the side. They did not know what had become of him; and
|
|
in that moment he struck them on the shoulder; rolling them off
|
|
their feet and delivering his stroke at the throat.
|
|
|
|
Sometimes this stroke was successful, and a stricken dog rolled in
|
|
the dirt, to be pounced upon and torn to pieces by the pack of
|
|
Indian dogs that waited. White Fang was wise. He had long since
|
|
learned that the gods were made angry when their dogs were killed. The
|
|
white men were no exception to this. So he was content, when he had
|
|
overthrown and slashed wide the throat of one of their dogs, to drop
|
|
back and let the pack go in and do the cruel finishing work. It was
|
|
then that the white men rushed in, visiting their wrath heavily on the
|
|
pack, while White Fang went free. He would stand off at a little
|
|
distance and look on, while stones, clubs, axes, and all sorts of
|
|
weapons fell upon his fellows. White Fang was very wise.
|
|
|
|
But his fellows grew wise, in their own way; and in this White
|
|
Fang grew wise with them. They learned that it was when a steamer
|
|
first tied to the bank that they had their fun. After the first two or
|
|
three strange dogs had been downed and destroyed, the white men
|
|
hustled their own animals back on board and wreaked savage vengeance
|
|
on the offenders. One white man, having seen his dog, a setter, torn
|
|
to pieces before his eyes, drew a revolver. He fired rapidly, six
|
|
times, and six of the pack lay dead or dying- another manifestation of
|
|
power that sank deep into White Fang's consciousness.
|
|
|
|
White Fang enjoyed it all. He did not love his kind, and he was
|
|
shrewd enough to escape hurt himself. At first, the killing of the
|
|
white men's dogs had been a diversion. After a time it became his
|
|
occupation. There was no work for him to do. Gray Beaver was busy
|
|
trading and getting wealthy. So White Fang hung around the landing
|
|
with the disreputable gang of Indian dogs, waiting for steamers.
|
|
With the arrival of a steamer the fun began. After a few minutes, by
|
|
the time the white men had got over their surprise, the gang
|
|
scattered. The fun was over until the next steamer should arrive.
|
|
|
|
But it can scarcely be said that White Fang was a member of the
|
|
gang. He did not mingle with it, but remained aloof, always himself,
|
|
and was even feared by it. It is true, he worked with it. He picked
|
|
the quarrel with the strange dog while the gang waited. And when he
|
|
had overthrown the strange dog the gang went to finish it. But it is
|
|
equally true that he then withdrew, leaving the gang to receive the
|
|
punishment of the outraged gods.
|
|
|
|
It did not require much exertion to pick these quarrels. All he
|
|
had to do, when the strange dogs came ashore, was to show himself.
|
|
When they saw him they rushed for him. It was their instinct. He was
|
|
the Wild- the unknown, the terrible, the ever menacing, the thing that
|
|
prowled in the darkness around the fires of the primeval world when
|
|
they, cowering close to the fires, were reshaping their instincts,
|
|
learning to fear the Wild out of which they had come, and which they
|
|
had deserted and betrayed. Generation by generation, down all the
|
|
generations, had this fear of the Wild been stamped into their
|
|
natures. For centuries the Wild had stood for terror and
|
|
destruction. And during all this time free license had been theirs,
|
|
from their masters, to kill the things of the Wild. In doing this they
|
|
had protected both themselves and the gods whose companionship they
|
|
shared.
|
|
|
|
And so fresh from the soft southern world, these dogs, trotting down
|
|
the gangplank and out upon the Yukon shore, had but to see White
|
|
Fang to experience the irresistible impulse to rush upon him and
|
|
destroy him. They might be town-reared dogs, but the instinctive
|
|
fear of the Wild was theirs just the same. Not alone with their own
|
|
eyes did they see the wolfish creature in the clear light of the
|
|
day, standing before them. They saw him with the eyes of their
|
|
ancestors, and by their inherited memory they knew White Fang for
|
|
the wolf, and they remembered the ancient feud.
|
|
|
|
All of which served to make White Fang's days enjoyable. If the
|
|
sight of him drove these strange dogs upon him, so much the better for
|
|
him, so much the worse for them. They looked upon him as legitimate
|
|
prey, and as legitimate prey he looked upon them.
|
|
|
|
Not for nothing had he first seen the light of day in a lonely
|
|
lair and fought his first fights with the ptarmigan, the weasel, and
|
|
the lynx. And not for nothing had his puppyhood been made bitter by
|
|
the persecution of Lip-lip and the whole puppy-pack. It might have
|
|
been otherwise, and he would then have been otherwise. Had Lip-lip not
|
|
existed, he would have passed his puppyhood with the other puppies and
|
|
grown up more doglike and with more liking for dogs. Had Gray Beaver
|
|
possessed the plummet of affection and love, he might have sounded the
|
|
deeps of White Fang's nature and brought up to the surface all
|
|
manner of kindly qualities. But these things had not been so. The clay
|
|
of White Fang had been moulded until he became what he was, morose and
|
|
lonely, unloving and ferocious, the enemy of all his kind.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER TWO.
|
|
|
|
The Mad God.
|
|
|
|
A SMALL NUMBER OF white men lived in Fort Yukon. These men had
|
|
been long in the country. They called themselves Sour-doughs, and took
|
|
great pride in so classifying themselves. For other men, new in the
|
|
land, they felt nothing but disdain. The men who came ashore from
|
|
the steamers were newcomers. They were known as chechaquos, and they
|
|
always wilted at the application of the name. They made their bread
|
|
with baking-powder. This was the invidious distinction between them
|
|
and the Sour-doughs, who, forsooth, made their bread from sour-dough
|
|
because they had no baking-powder.
|
|
|
|
All of which is neither here nor there. The men in the fort
|
|
disdained the newcomers and enjoyed seeing them come to grief.
|
|
Especially did they enjoy the havoc worked amongst the newcomers' dogs
|
|
by White Fang and his disreputable gang. When a steamer arrived, the
|
|
men at the fort made it a point always to come down to the bank and
|
|
see the fun. They looked forward to it with as much anticipation as
|
|
did the Indian dogs, while they were not slow to appreciate the savage
|
|
and crafty part played by White Fang.
|
|
|
|
But there was one man amongst them who particularly enjoyed the
|
|
sport. He would come running at the first sound of a steamboat's
|
|
whistle; and when the last fight was over and White Fang and the
|
|
pack had scattered, he would return slowly to the fort, his face heavy
|
|
with regret. Sometimes, when a soft Southland dog went down, shrieking
|
|
its death-cry under the fangs of the pack, this man would be unable to
|
|
contain himself, and would leap into the air and cry out with delight.
|
|
And always he had a sharp and covetous eye for White Fang.
|
|
|
|
This man was called 'Beauty' by the other men of the fort. No one
|
|
knew his first name, and in general he was known in the country as
|
|
Beauty Smith. But he was anything save a beauty. To antithesis was due
|
|
his naming. He was preeminently unbeautiful. Nature had been niggardly
|
|
with him. He was a small man to begin with; and upon his meager
|
|
frame was deposited an even more strikingly meager head. Its apex
|
|
might be likened to a point. In fact, in his boyhood, before he had
|
|
been named Beauty by his fellows, he had been called 'Pinhead.'
|
|
|
|
Backward, from the apex, his head slanted down to his neck; and
|
|
forward, it slanted uncompromisingly to meet a low and remarkably wide
|
|
forehead. Beginning here, as though, regretting her parsimony,
|
|
Nature had spread his features with a lavish hand. His eyes were
|
|
large, and between them was the distance of two eyes. His face, in
|
|
relation to the rest of him, was prodigious. In order to discover
|
|
the necessary area, Nature had given him an enormous prognathous
|
|
jaw. It was wide and heavy, and protruded outward and down until it
|
|
seemed to rest on his chest. Possibly this appearance was due to the
|
|
weariness of the slender neck, unable properly to support so great a
|
|
burden.
|
|
|
|
This jaw gave the impression of ferocious determination. But
|
|
something lacked. Perhaps it was from excess. Perhaps the jaw was
|
|
too large. At any rate, it was a lie. Beauty Smith was known far and
|
|
wide as the weakest of weak-kneed and sniveling cowards. To complete
|
|
his description, his teeth were large and yellow, while the two
|
|
eyeteeth, larger than their fellows, showed under his lean lips like
|
|
fangs. His eyes were yellow and muddy, as though Nature had run
|
|
short on pigments and squeezed together the dregs of all her tubes. It
|
|
was the same with his hair, sparse and irregular of growth,
|
|
muddy-yellow and dirty-yellow, rising on his head and sprouting out of
|
|
his face in unexpected tufts and bunches, in appearance like clumped
|
|
and wind-blown grain.
|
|
|
|
In short, Beauty Smith was a monstrosity, and the blame of it lay
|
|
elsewhere. He was not responsible. The clay of him had been so moulded
|
|
in the making. He did the cooking for the other men in the fort, the
|
|
dish-washing and the drudgery. They did not despise him. Rather did
|
|
they tolerate him in a broad human way, as one tolerates any
|
|
creature evilly treated in the making. Also, they feared him. His
|
|
cowardly rages made them dread a shot in the back or poison in their
|
|
coffee. But somebody had to do the cooking, and whatever else his
|
|
shortcomings, Beauty Smith could cook.
|
|
|
|
This was the man that looked at White Fang, delighted in his
|
|
ferocious prowess, and desired to possess him. He made overtures to
|
|
White Fang from the first. White Fang began by ignoring him. Later on,
|
|
when the overtures became more insistent, White Fang bristled and
|
|
bared his teeth and backed away. He did not like the man. The feel
|
|
of him was bad. He sensed the evil in him, and feared the extended
|
|
hand and the attempts at soft-spoken speech. Because of all this, he
|
|
hated the man.
|
|
|
|
With the simpler creatures, good and bad are things simply
|
|
understood. The good stands for all things that bring easement and
|
|
satisfaction and surcease from pain. Therefore, the good is liked. The
|
|
bad stands for all things that are fraught with discomfort, menace,
|
|
and hurt, and is hated accordingly. White Fang's feel of Beauty
|
|
Smith was bad. From the man's distorted body and twisted mind, in
|
|
occult ways, like mists rising from malarial marshes, come
|
|
emanations of the unhealth within. Not by reasoning, not by the five
|
|
senses alone, but by other and remoter and uncharted senses, came
|
|
the feeling to White Fang that the man was ominous with evil, pregnant
|
|
with hurtfulness, and therefore a thing bad, and wisely to be hated.
|
|
|
|
White Fang was in Gray Beaver's camp when Beauty Smith first visited
|
|
it. At the faint sound of his distant feet, before he came in sight,
|
|
White Fang knew who was coming and began to bristle. He had been lying
|
|
down in an abandon of comfort, but he arose quickly, and as the man
|
|
arrived, slid away in true wolf-fashion to the edge of the camp. He
|
|
did not know what they said, but he could see the man and Gray
|
|
Beaver talking together. Once, the man pointed at him, and White
|
|
Fang snarled back as though the hand was just descending upon him
|
|
instead of being, as it was, fifty feet away. The man laughed at this;
|
|
and White Fang slunk away to the sheltering woods, his head turned
|
|
to observe as he glided softly over the ground.
|
|
|
|
Gray Beaver refused to sell the dog. He had grown rich with his
|
|
trading and stood in need of nothing. Besides, White Fang was a
|
|
valuable animal, the strongest sled-dog he had ever owned, and the
|
|
best leader. Furthermore, there was no dog like him on the Mackenzie
|
|
nor the Yukon. He could fight. He killed other dogs as easily as men
|
|
killed mosquitoes. (Beauty Smith's eyes lighted up at this, and he
|
|
licked his thin lips with an eager tongue.) No, White Fang was not for
|
|
sale at any price.
|
|
|
|
But Beauty Smith knew the ways of Indians. He visited Gray
|
|
Beaver's camp often, and hidden under his coat was always a black
|
|
bottle or so. One of the potencies of whiskey is the breeding of
|
|
thirst. Gray Beaver got the thirst. His fevered membranes and burnt
|
|
stomach began to clamor for more and more of the scorching fluid;
|
|
while his brain, thrust all awry by the unwonted stimulant,
|
|
permitted him to go any length to obtain it. The money he had received
|
|
for his furs and mittens and moccasins began to go. It went faster and
|
|
faster, and the shorter his money-sack grew, the shorter grew his
|
|
temper.
|
|
|
|
In the end his money and goods and temper were all gone. Nothing
|
|
remained to him but his thirst, a prodigious possession in itself that
|
|
grew more prodigious with every sober breath he drew. Then it was that
|
|
Beauty Smith had talk with him again about the sale of White Fang; but
|
|
this time the price offered was in bottles, not dollars, and Gray
|
|
Beaver's ears were more eager to hear.
|
|
|
|
'You ketch um dog you take um all right,' was his last word.
|
|
|
|
The bottles were delivered, but after two days, 'You ketch um
|
|
dog,' were Beauty Smith's words to Gray Beaver.
|
|
|
|
White Fang slunk into camp one evening and dropped down with a
|
|
sigh of content. The dreaded white god was not there. For days his
|
|
manifestations of desire to lay hands on him had been growing more
|
|
insistent, and during that time White Fang had been compelled to avoid
|
|
the camp. He did not know what evil was threatened by those
|
|
insistent hands. He knew only that they did threaten evil of some
|
|
sort, and that it was best for him to keep out of their reach.
|
|
|
|
But scarcely had he lain down when Gray Beaver staggered over to him
|
|
and tied a leather thong around his neck. He sat down beside White
|
|
Fang, holding the end of the thong in his hand. In the other hand he
|
|
held a bottle, which, from time to time, was inverted above his head
|
|
to the accompaniment of gurgling noises.
|
|
|
|
An hour of this passed, when the vibrations of feet in contact
|
|
with the ground foreran the one who approached. White Fang heard it
|
|
first, and was bristling with recognition while Gray Beaver still
|
|
nodded stupidly. White Fang tried to draw the thong softly out of
|
|
his master's hand; but the relaxed fingers closed tightly and Gray
|
|
Beaver roused himself.
|
|
|
|
Beauty Smith strode into camp and stood over White Fang. He
|
|
snarled softly up at the thing of fear, watching keenly the deportment
|
|
of the hands. One hand extended outward and began to descend upon
|
|
his head. His soft snarl grew tense and harsh. The hand continued
|
|
slowly to descend, while he crouched beneath it, eyeing it
|
|
malignantly, his snarl growing shorter and shorter as, with quickening
|
|
breath, it approached its culmination. Suddenly he snapped, striking
|
|
with his fangs like a snake. The hand was jerked back, and the teeth
|
|
came together emptily with a sharp click. Beauty Smith was
|
|
frightened and angry. Gray Beaver clouted White Fang alongside the
|
|
head, so that he cowered down close to the earth in respectful
|
|
obedience.
|
|
|
|
White Fang's suspicious eyes followed every movement. He saw
|
|
Beauty Smith go away and return with a stout club. Then the end of the
|
|
thong was given over to him by Gray Beaver. Beauty Smith started to
|
|
walk away. The thong grew taut. White Fang resisted it. Gray Beaver
|
|
clouted him right and left to make him get up and follow. He obeyed,
|
|
but with a rush, hurling himself upon the stranger who was dragging
|
|
him away. Beauty Smith did not jump away. He had been waiting for
|
|
this. He swung the club smartly, stopping the rush midway and smashing
|
|
White Fang down upon the ground. Gray Beaver laughed and nodded
|
|
approval. Beauty Smith tightened the thong again, and White Fang
|
|
crawled limply and dizzily to his feet.
|
|
|
|
He did not rush a second time. One smash from the club was
|
|
sufficient to convince him that the white god knew how to handle it,
|
|
and he was too wise to fight the inevitable. So he followed morosely
|
|
at Beauty Smith's heels, his tail between his legs, yet snarling
|
|
softly under his breath. But Beauty Smith kept a wary eye on him,
|
|
and the club was held always ready to strike.
|
|
|
|
At the fort Beauty Smith left him securely tied and went in to
|
|
bed. White Fang waited an hour. Then he applied his teeth to the
|
|
thong, and in the space of ten seconds was free. He had wasted no time
|
|
with his teeth. There had been no useless gnawing. The thong was cut
|
|
across, diagonally, almost as clean as though done by a knife. White
|
|
Fang looked up at the fort, at the same time bristling and growling.
|
|
Then he turned and trotted back to Gray Beaver's camp. He owed no
|
|
allegiance to this strange and terrible god. He had given himself to
|
|
Gray Beaver, and to Gray Beaver he considered he still belonged.
|
|
|
|
But what had occurred before was repeated- with a difference. Gray
|
|
Beaver again made him fast with a thong, and in the morning turned him
|
|
over to Beauty Smith. And here was where the difference came in.
|
|
Beauty Smith gave him a beating. Tied securely, White Fang could
|
|
only rage futilely and endure the punishment. Club and whip were
|
|
both used upon him, and he experienced the worst beating he had ever
|
|
received in his life. Even the big beating given him in his
|
|
puppyhood by Gray Beaver was mild compared with this.
|
|
|
|
Beauty Smith enjoyed the task. He delighted in it. He gloated over
|
|
his victim, and his eyes flamed dully, as he swung the whip or club
|
|
and listened to White Fang's cries of pain and to his helpless bellows
|
|
and snarls. For Beauty Smith was cruel in the way that cowards are
|
|
cruel. Cringing and sniveling himself before the blows or angry speech
|
|
of a man, he revenged himself, in turn, upon creatures weaker than he.
|
|
All life likes power, and Beauty Smith was no exception. Denied the
|
|
expression of power amongst his own kind, he fell back upon the lesser
|
|
creatures and there vindicated the life that was in him. But Beauty
|
|
Smith had not created himself, and no blame was to be attached to him.
|
|
He had come into the world with a twisted body and a brute
|
|
intelligence. This had constituted the clay of him, and it had not
|
|
been kindly moulded by the world.
|
|
|
|
White Fang knew why he was being beaten. When Gray Beaver tied the
|
|
thong around his neck, and passed the end of the thong into Beauty
|
|
Smith's keeping, White Fang knew that it was his god's will for him to
|
|
go with Beauty Smith. And when Beauty Smith left him tied outside
|
|
the fort, he knew that it was Beauty Smith's will that he should
|
|
remain there. Therefore, he had disobeyed the will of both the gods,
|
|
and earned the consequent punishment. He had seen dogs change owners
|
|
in the past, and he had seen the runaways beaten as he was being
|
|
beaten. He was wise, and yet in the nature of him there were forces
|
|
greater than wisdom. One of these was fidelity. He did not love Gray
|
|
Beaver, yet, even in the face of his will and his anger, he was
|
|
faithful to him. He could not help it. This faithfulness was a quality
|
|
of the clay that composed him. It was the quality that was
|
|
peculiarly the possession of his kind; the quality that set apart
|
|
his species from all other species; the quality that had enabled the
|
|
wolf and the wild dog to come in from the open and be the companions
|
|
of man.
|
|
|
|
After the beating, White Fang was dragged back to the fort. But this
|
|
time Beauty Smith left him tied with a stick. One does not give up a
|
|
god easily, and so with White Fang. Gray Beaver was his own particular
|
|
god, and, in spite of Gray Beaver's will, White Fang still clung to
|
|
him and would not give him up. Gray Beaver had betrayed and forsaken
|
|
him, but that had no effect upon him. Not for nothing had he
|
|
surrendered himself body and soul to Gray Beaver. There had been no
|
|
reservation on White Fang's part, and the bond was not to be broken
|
|
easily.
|
|
|
|
So in the night, when the men at the fort were asleep, White Fang
|
|
applied his teeth to the stick that held him. The wood was seasoned
|
|
and dry, and it was tied so closely to his neck that he could scarcely
|
|
get his teeth to it. It was only by the severest muscular exertion and
|
|
neck-arching that he succeeded in getting the wood between his
|
|
teeth, and barely between his teeth at that; and it was only by the
|
|
exercise of an immense patience, extending through many hours, that he
|
|
succeeded in gnawing through the stick. This was something that dogs
|
|
were not supposed to do. It was unprecedented. But White Fang did
|
|
it, trotting away from the fort in the early morning with the end of
|
|
the stick hanging to his neck.
|
|
|
|
He was wise. But had he been merely wise he would not have gone back
|
|
to Gray Beaver, who had already twice betrayed him. But there was
|
|
his faithfulness, and he went back to be betrayed yet a third time.
|
|
Again he yielded to the tying of a thong around his neck by Gray
|
|
Beaver, and again Beauty Smith came to claim him. And this time he was
|
|
beaten even more severely than before.
|
|
|
|
Gray Beaver looked on stolidly while the white man yielded the whip.
|
|
He gave no protection. It was no longer his dog. When the beating
|
|
was over White Fang was sick. A soft Southland dog would have died
|
|
under it, but not he. His school of life had been sterner, and he
|
|
was himself of sterner stuff. He had too great vitality. His clutch on
|
|
life was too strong. But he was very sick. At first he was unable to
|
|
drag himself along, and Beauty Smith had to wait half an hour on
|
|
him. And then, blind and reeling, he followed at Beauty Smith's
|
|
heels back to the fort.
|
|
|
|
But now he was tied with a chain that defied his teeth, and he
|
|
strove in vain by lunging, to draw the staple from the timber into
|
|
which it was driven. After a few days, sober and bankrupt, Gray Beaver
|
|
departed up the Porcupine on his long journey to the Mackenzie.
|
|
White Fang remained on the Yukon, the property of a man more than half
|
|
mad and all brute. But what is a dog to know in its consciousness of
|
|
madness? To White Fang, Beauty Smith was a veritable, if terrible,
|
|
god. He was a mad god at best, but White Fang knew nothing of madness;
|
|
he knew only that he must submit to the will of this new master,
|
|
obey his every whim and fancy.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER THREE.
|
|
|
|
The Reign of Hate.
|
|
|
|
UNDER THE TUTELAGE OF the mad god, White Fang became a fiend. He was
|
|
kept chained in a pen at the rear of the fort, and here Beauty Smith
|
|
teased and irritated and drove him wild with petty torments. The man
|
|
early discovered White Fang's susceptibility to laughter, and made
|
|
it a point, after painfully tricking him, to laugh at him. This
|
|
laughter was uproarious and scornful, and at the same time the god
|
|
pointed his finger derisively at White Fang. At such times reason fled
|
|
from White Fang, and in his transports of rage he was even more mad
|
|
than Beauty Smith.
|
|
|
|
Formerly, White Fang had been merely the enemy of his kind, withal a
|
|
ferocious enemy. He now became the enemy of all things, and more
|
|
ferocious than ever. To such an extent was he tormented, that he hated
|
|
blindly and without the faintest spark of reason. He hated the chain
|
|
that bound him, the men who peered in at him through the slats of
|
|
the pen, the dogs that accompanied the men and that snarled
|
|
malignantly at him in his helplessness. He hated the very wood of
|
|
the pen that confined him. And first, last, and most of all, he
|
|
hated Beauty Smith.
|
|
|
|
But Beauty Smith had a purpose in all that he did to White Fang. One
|
|
day a number of men gathered about the pen. Beauty Smith entered, club
|
|
in hand, and took the chain from off White Fang's neck. When his
|
|
master had gone out, White Fang turned loose and tore around the
|
|
pen, trying to get at the men outside. He was magnificently
|
|
terrible. Fully five feet in length, and standing two and one-half
|
|
feet at the shoulder, he far outweighed a wolf of corresponding
|
|
size. From his mother he had inherited the heavier proportions of
|
|
the dog, so that he weighed, without any fat and without an ounce of
|
|
superfluous flesh, over ninety pounds. It was all muscle, bone, and
|
|
sinew-fighting flesh in the finest condition.
|
|
|
|
The door of the pen was being opened again. White Fang paused.
|
|
Something unusual was happening. He waited. The door was opened wider.
|
|
Then a huge dog was thrust inside, and the door was slammed shut
|
|
behind him. White Fang had never seen such a dog (it was a mastiff);
|
|
but the size and fierce aspect of the intruder did not deter him. Here
|
|
was something, not wood nor iron, upon which to wreak his hate. He
|
|
leaped in with a flash of fangs that ripped down the side of the
|
|
mastiff's neck. The mastiff shook his head, growled hoarsely, and
|
|
plunged at White Fang. But White Fang was here, there, and everywhere,
|
|
always evading and eluding, and always leaping in and slashing with
|
|
his fangs and leaping out again in time to escape punishment.
|
|
|
|
The men outside shouted and applauded, while Beauty Smith, in an
|
|
ecstasy of delight, gloated over the ripping and mangling performed by
|
|
White Fang. There was no hope for the mastiff from the first. He was
|
|
too ponderous and slow. In the end, while Beauty Smith beat White Fang
|
|
back with a club, the mastiff was dragged out by its owner. Then there
|
|
was a payment of bets, and money clinked in Beauty Smith's hand.
|
|
|
|
White Fang came to look forward eagerly to the gathering of the
|
|
men around his pen. It meant a fight; and this was the only way that
|
|
was now vouchsafed him of expressing the life that was in him.
|
|
Tormented, incited to hate, he was kept a prisoner so that there was
|
|
no way of satisfying that hate except at the times his master saw
|
|
fit to put another dog against him. Beauty Smith had estimated his
|
|
powers well, for he was invariably the victor. One day, three dogs
|
|
were turned in upon him in succession. Another day, a full-grown wolf,
|
|
fresh-caught from the Wild, was shoved in through the door of the pen.
|
|
And on still another day two dogs were set against him at the same
|
|
time. This was his severest fight, and although in the end he killed
|
|
them both he was himself half killed in doing it.
|
|
|
|
In the fall of the year, when the first snows were falling and
|
|
mush-ice was running in the river, Beauty Smith took passage for
|
|
himself and White Fang on a steamboat bound up the Yukon to Dawson.
|
|
White Fang had now achieved a reputation in the land. As 'the Fighting
|
|
Wolf' he was known far and wide, and the cage in which he was kept
|
|
on the steamboat's deck was usually surrounded by curious men. He
|
|
raged and snarled at them, or lay quietly and studied them with cold
|
|
hatred. Why should he not hate them? He never asked himself the
|
|
question. He knew only hate and lost himself in the passion of it.
|
|
Life had become a hell to him. He had not been made for the close
|
|
confinement wild beasts endure at the hand of men. And yet it was in
|
|
precisely this way that he was treated. Men stared at him, poked
|
|
sticks between the bars to make him snarl, and then laughed at him.
|
|
|
|
They were his environment, these men, and they were moulding the
|
|
clay of him into a more ferocious thing than had been intended by
|
|
Nature. Nevertheless, Nature had given him plasticity. Where many
|
|
another animal would have died or had its spirit broken, he adjusted
|
|
himself and lived, and at no expense of the spirit. Possibly Beauty
|
|
Smith, arch-fiend and tormentor, was capable of breaking White
|
|
Fang's spirit, but as yet there were no signs of his succeeding.
|
|
|
|
If Beauty Smith had in him a devil, White Fang had another; and
|
|
the two of them raged against each other unceasingly. In the days
|
|
before, White Fang had had wisdom to cower down and submit to a man
|
|
with a club in his hand; but this wisdom now left him. The mere
|
|
sight of Beauty Smith was sufficient to send him into transports of
|
|
fury. And when they came to close quarters, and he had been beaten
|
|
back by the club, he went on growling and snarling and showing his
|
|
fangs. The last growl could never be extracted from him. No matter how
|
|
terribly he was beaten, he had always another growl; and Beauty
|
|
Smith gave up and withdrew, the defiant growl followed after him, or
|
|
White Fang sprang at the bars of the cage bellowing his hatred.
|
|
|
|
When the steamboat arrived at Dawson, White Fang went ashore. But he
|
|
still lived a public life, in a cage, surrounded by curious men. He
|
|
was exhibited as 'The Fighting Wolf,' and men paid fifty cents in gold
|
|
dust to see him. He was given no rest. Did he lie down to sleep, he
|
|
was stirred up by a sharp stick- so that the audience might get its
|
|
money's worth. In order to make the exhibition interesting, he was
|
|
kept in a rage most of the time. But worse than all this, was the
|
|
atmosphere in which he lived. He was regarded as the most fearful of
|
|
wild beasts, and this was borne in to him through the bars of the
|
|
cage. Every word, every cautious action, on the part of the men,
|
|
impressed upon him his own terrible ferocity. It was so much added
|
|
fuel to the flame of his fierceness. There could be but one result,
|
|
and that was that his ferocity fed upon itself and increased. It was
|
|
another instance of the plasticity of his clay, of his capacity for
|
|
being moulded by the pressure of environment.
|
|
|
|
In addition to being exhibited, he was a professional fighting
|
|
animal. At irregular intervals, whenever a fight could be arranged, he
|
|
was taken out of his cage and led off into the woods a few miles
|
|
from town. Usually this occurred at night, so as to avoid interference
|
|
from the mounted police of the Territory. After a few hours of
|
|
waiting, when daylight had come, the audience and the dog with which
|
|
he was to fight arrived. In this manner it came about that he fought
|
|
all sizes and breeds of dogs. It was a savage land, the men were
|
|
savage, and the fights were usually to the death.
|
|
|
|
Since White Fang continued to fight, it is obvious that it was the
|
|
other dogs that died. He never knew defeat. His early training, when
|
|
he fought with Lip-lip and the whole puppy-pack, stood him in good
|
|
stead. There was the tenacity with which he clung to the earth. No dog
|
|
could make him lose his footing. This was the favourite trick of the
|
|
wolf breeds- to rush in upon him, either directly or with an
|
|
unexpected swerve, in the hope of striking his shoulder and
|
|
overthrowing him. Mackenzie hounds, Eskimo and Labrador dogs,
|
|
huskies and Malemutes- all tried it on him, and all failed. He was
|
|
never known to lose his footing. Men told this to one another, and
|
|
looked each time to see it happen; but White Fang always
|
|
disappointed them.
|
|
|
|
Then there was his lightning quickness. It gave him a tremendous
|
|
advantage over his antagonists. No matter what their fighting
|
|
experience, they had never encountered a dog that moved so swiftly
|
|
as he. Also to be reckoned with, was the immediateness of his
|
|
attack. The average dog was accustomed to the preliminaries of
|
|
snarling and bristling and growling, and the average dog was knocked
|
|
off his feet and finished before he had begun to fight or recovered
|
|
from his surprise. So oft did this happen, that it became the custom
|
|
to hold White Fang until the other dog went through its preliminaries,
|
|
was good and ready, and even made the first attack.
|
|
|
|
But greatest of all the advantages in White Fang's favor, was his
|
|
experience. He knew more about fighting than did any of the dogs
|
|
that faced him. He had fought more fights, knew how to meet more
|
|
tricks and methods, and had more tricks himself, while his own
|
|
method was scarcely to be improved upon.
|
|
|
|
As the time went by, he had fewer and fewer fights. Men despaired of
|
|
matching him with an equal, and Beauty Smith was compelled to pit
|
|
wolves against him. These were trapped by the Indians for the purpose,
|
|
and a fight between White Fang and a wolf was always sure to draw a
|
|
crowd. Once, a full-grown female lynx was secured, and this time White
|
|
Fang fought for his life. Her quickness matched his; her ferocity
|
|
equalled his; while he fought with his fang alone, and she fought with
|
|
her sharp-clawed feet as well.
|
|
|
|
But after the lynx, all fighting ceased for White Fang. There were
|
|
no more animals with which to fight- at least, there was none
|
|
considered worthy of fighting with him. So he remained on exhibition
|
|
until spring, when one Tim Keenan, a faro-dealer, arrived in the land.
|
|
With him came the first bulldog that had ever entered the Klondike.
|
|
That this dog and White Fang should come together was inevitable,
|
|
and for a week the anticipated fight was the mainspring of
|
|
conversation in certain quarters of the town.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER FOUR.
|
|
|
|
The Clinging Death.
|
|
|
|
BEAUTY SMITH SLIPPED the chain from his neck and stepped back.
|
|
|
|
For once White Fang did not make an immediate attack. He stood
|
|
still, ears pricked forward, alert and curious, surveying the
|
|
strange animal that faced him. He had never seen such a dog before.
|
|
Tim Keenan shoved the bulldog forward with a muttered 'Go to it.'
|
|
animal waddled toward the center of the circle, short and squat and
|
|
ungainly. He came to a stop and blinked across at White Fang.
|
|
|
|
There were cries from the crowd of 'Go to him, Cherokee!' 'Sick
|
|
'm, Cherokee!' Eat 'm up!'
|
|
|
|
But Cherokee did not seem anxious to fight. He turned his head and
|
|
blinked at the men who shouted, at the same time wagging his stump
|
|
of a tail good-naturedly. He was not afraid, but merely lazy. Besides,
|
|
it did not seem to him that it was intended he should fight with the
|
|
dog he saw before him. He was not used to fighting with that kind of
|
|
dog, and he was waiting for them to bring on the real dog.
|
|
|
|
Tim Keenan stepped in and bent over Cherokee, fondling him on both
|
|
sides of the shoulders with hands that rubbed against the grain of the
|
|
hair and that made slight, pushing-forward movements. These were so
|
|
many suggestions. Also, their effect was irritating, for Cherokee
|
|
began to growl, very softly, deep in his throat. There was a
|
|
correspondence in rhythm between the growls and the movements of the
|
|
man's hands. The growl rose in the throat with the culmination of each
|
|
forward-pushing movement, and ebbed down to start up afresh with the
|
|
beginning of the next movement. The end of each movement was the
|
|
accent of the rhythm, the movement ending abruptly and the growling
|
|
rising with a jerk.
|
|
|
|
This was not without its effect on White Fang. The hair began to
|
|
rise on his neck and across the shoulders. Tim Keenan gave a final
|
|
shove forward and stepped back again. As the impetus that carried
|
|
Cherokee forward died down, he continued to go forward of his own
|
|
volition, in a swift, bowlegged run. Then White Fang struck. A cry
|
|
of startled admiration went up. He had covered the distance and gone
|
|
in more like a cat than a dog; and with the same catlike swiftness
|
|
he had slashed with his fangs and leaped clear.
|
|
|
|
The bulldog was bleeding back of one ear from a rip in his thick
|
|
neck. He gave no sign, did not even snarl, but turned and followed
|
|
after White Fang. The display on both sides, the quickness of the
|
|
one and the steadiness of the other, had excited the partisan spirit
|
|
of the crowd, and the men were making new bets and increasing original
|
|
bets. Again, and yet again, White Fang sprang in, slashed, and got
|
|
away untouched; and still his strange foe followed after him,
|
|
without too great haste, not slowly, but deliberately and
|
|
determinedly, in a businesslike sort of way. There was purpose in
|
|
his method- something for him to do that he was intent upon doing
|
|
and from which nothing could distract him.
|
|
|
|
His whole demeanor, every action, was stamped with his purpose. It
|
|
puzzled White Fang. Never had he seen such a dog. It had no hair
|
|
protection. It was soft, and bled easily. There was no thick mat of
|
|
fur to baffle White Fang's teeth, as they were often baffled by dogs
|
|
of his own breed. Each time that his teeth struck they sank easily
|
|
into the yielding flesh, while the animal did not seem able to
|
|
defend itself. Another disconcerting thing was that it made no outcry,
|
|
such as he had been accustomed to with the other dogs he had fought.
|
|
Beyond a growl or a grunt, the dog took its punishment silently. And
|
|
never did it flag in its pursuit of him.
|
|
|
|
Not that Cherokee was slow. He could turn and whirl swiftly
|
|
enough, but White Fang was never there. Cherokee was puzzled, too.
|
|
He had never fought before with a dog with which he could not close.
|
|
The desire to close had always been mutual. But here was a dog that
|
|
kept at a distance, dancing and dodging here and there and all
|
|
about. And when it did get its teeth into him, it did not hold on
|
|
but let go instantly and darted away again.
|
|
|
|
But White Fang could not get at the soft underside of the throat.
|
|
The bulldog stood too short, while its massive jaws were an added
|
|
protection. White Fang darted in and out unscathed, while Cherokee's
|
|
wounds increased. Both sides of his neck and head were ripped and
|
|
slashed. He bled freely, but showed no signs of being disconcerted. He
|
|
continued his plodding pursuit, though once, for the moment baffled,
|
|
he came to a full stop and blinked at the men who looked on, at the
|
|
same time wagging his stump of a tail as an expression of his
|
|
willingness to fight.
|
|
|
|
In that moment White Fang was in upon him and out, in passing
|
|
ripping his trimmed remnant of an ear. With a slight manifestation
|
|
of anger, Cherokee took up the pursuit again, running on the inside of
|
|
the circle White Fang was making, and striving to fasten his deadly
|
|
grip on White Fang's throat. The bulldog missed by a hair's-breadth,
|
|
and cries of praise went up as White Fang doubled suddenly out of
|
|
danger in the opposite direction.
|
|
|
|
The time went by. White Fang still danced on, dodging and
|
|
doubling, leaping in and out, and even inflicting damage. And still
|
|
the bulldog, with grim certitude, toiled after him. Sooner or later he
|
|
would accomplish his purpose, get the grip that would win the
|
|
battle. In the meantime he accepted all the punishment the other could
|
|
deal him. His tufts of ears had become tassels, his neck and shoulders
|
|
were slashed in a score of places, and his very lips were cut and
|
|
bleeding- all from those lightning snaps that were beyond his
|
|
foreseeing and guarding.
|
|
|
|
Time and again White Fang had attempted to knock Cherokee off his
|
|
feet; but the difference in their height was too great. Cherokee was
|
|
too squat, too close to the ground. White Fang tried the trick once
|
|
too often. The chance came in one of his quick doublings and
|
|
counter-circlings. He caught Cherokee with head turned away as he
|
|
whirled more slowly. His shoulder was exposed. White Fang drove in
|
|
upon it; but his own shoulder was high above, while he struck with
|
|
such force that his momentum carried him on across over the other's
|
|
body. For the first time in his fighting history, men saw White Fang
|
|
lose his footing. His body turned a half-somersault in the air, and he
|
|
would have landed on his back had he not twisted, catlike, still in
|
|
the air, in the effort to bring his feet to the earth. As it was he
|
|
struck heavily on his side. The next instant he was on his feet, but
|
|
in that instant Cherokee's teeth closed on his throat.
|
|
|
|
It was not a good grip, being too low down toward the chest; but
|
|
Cherokee held on. White Fang sprang to his feet and tore wildly
|
|
around, trying to shake off the bulldog's body. It made him frantic,
|
|
this clinging, dragging weight. It bound his movements, restricted his
|
|
freedom. It was like a trap, and all his instinct resented it and
|
|
revolted against it. It was a mad revolt. For several minutes he was
|
|
to all intents insane. The basic life that was in him took charge of
|
|
him. The will to exist of his body surged over him. He was dominated
|
|
by this mere flesh-love of life. All intelligence was gone. It was
|
|
as though he had no brain. His reason was unseated by the blind
|
|
yearning of the flesh to exist and move, at all hazards to move, to
|
|
continue to move, for movement was the expression of its existence.
|
|
|
|
Round and round he went, whirling and turning and reversing,
|
|
trying to shake off the fifty-pound weight that dragged at his throat.
|
|
The bulldog did little but keep his grip. Sometimes, and rarely, he
|
|
managed to get his feet to the earth and for a moment to brace himself
|
|
against White Fang. But the next moment his footing would be lost
|
|
and he would be dragging around in the whirl of one of White Fang's
|
|
mad gyrations. Cherokee identified himself with his instinct. He
|
|
knew that he was doing the right thing by holding on, and there came
|
|
to him certain blissful thrills of satisfaction. At such moments he
|
|
even closed his eyes and allowed his body to be hurled hither and
|
|
thither, willy-nilly, careless of any hurt that might thereby come
|
|
to it. That did not count. The grip was the thing, and the grip he
|
|
kept.
|
|
|
|
White Fang ceased only when he had tired himself out. He could do
|
|
nothing and he could not understand. Never, in all his fighting, had
|
|
this thing happened. The dogs he had fought with did not fight that
|
|
way. With them it was snap and slash and get away, snap and slash
|
|
and get away. He lay partly on his side, panting for breath. Cherokee,
|
|
still holding his grip, urged against him, trying to get him over
|
|
entirely on his side. White Fang resisted, and he could feel the
|
|
jaws shifting their grip, slightly relaxing and coming together
|
|
again in a chewing movement. Each shift brought the grip closer in
|
|
to his throat. The bulldog's method was to hold what he had, and
|
|
when opportunity favored to work in for more. Opportunity favored when
|
|
White Fang remained quiet. When White Fang struggled, Cherokee was
|
|
content merely to hold on.
|
|
|
|
The bulging back of Cherokee's neck was the only portion of his body
|
|
that White Fang's teeth could reach. He got hold toward the base where
|
|
the neck comes out from the shoulders; but he did not know the chewing
|
|
method of fighting, nor were his jaws adapted to it. He
|
|
spasmodically ripped and tore with his fangs for a space. Then a
|
|
change in their position diverted him. The bulldog had managed to roll
|
|
him over on his back, and still hanging on to his throat, was on top
|
|
of him. Like a cat. White Fang bowed his hind-quarters in, and, with
|
|
his feet digging into his enemy's abdomen above him, he began to
|
|
claw with long, tearing strokes. Cherokee might well have been
|
|
disemboweled had he not quickly pivoted on his grip and got his body
|
|
off of White Fang's and at right angles to it.
|
|
|
|
There was no escaping that grip. It was like Fate itself, and was
|
|
inexorable. Slowly it shifted up along the jugular. All that saved
|
|
White Fang from death was the loose skin of his neck and the thick fur
|
|
that covered it. This served to form a large roll in Cherokee's mouth,
|
|
the fur of which well-nigh defied his teeth. But bit by bit,
|
|
whenever the chance offered, he was getting more of the loose skin and
|
|
fur in his mouth. The result was that he was slowly throttling White
|
|
Fang. The latter's breath was drawn with greater and greater
|
|
difficulty as the moments went by.
|
|
|
|
It began to look as though the battle were over. The backers of
|
|
Cherokee waxed jubilant and offered ridiculous odds. White Fang's
|
|
backers were correspondingly depressed and refused bets of ten to
|
|
one and twenty to one, though one man was rash enough to close a wager
|
|
of fifty to one. This man was Beauty Smith. He took a step into the
|
|
ring and pointed his finger at White Fang. Then he began to laugh
|
|
derisively and scornfully. This produced the desired effect. White
|
|
Fang went wild with rage. He called up his reserves of strength and
|
|
gained his feet. As he struggled around the ring, the fifty pounds
|
|
of his foe ever dragging on his throat, his anger passed on into
|
|
panic. The basic life of him dominated him again, and his intelligence
|
|
fled before the will of his flesh to live. Round and round and back
|
|
again, stumbling and falling and rising, even uprearing at times on
|
|
his hind-legs and lifting his foe clear of the earth, he struggled
|
|
vainly to shake off the clinging death.
|
|
|
|
At last he fell, toppling backward, exhausted; and the bulldog
|
|
promptly shifted his grip, getting in closer, mangling more and more
|
|
of the fur-folded flesh, throttling White Fang more severely than
|
|
ever. Shouts of applause went up for the victor, and there were many
|
|
cries of 'Cherokee!' 'Cherokee!' To this Cherokee responded by
|
|
vigorous wagging of the stump of his tail. But the clamor of
|
|
approval did not distract him. There was no sympathetic relation
|
|
between his tail and his massive jaws. The one might wag, but the
|
|
others held their terrible grip on White Fang's throat.
|
|
|
|
It was at this time that a diversion came to the spectators. There
|
|
was a jingle of bells. Dog-mushers' cries were heard. Everybody,
|
|
save Beauty Smith, looked apprehensively, the fear of the police
|
|
strong upon them. But they saw, up the trail, and not down, two men
|
|
running with sleds and dogs. They were evidently coming down the creek
|
|
from some prospecting trip. At sight of the crowd they stopped their
|
|
dogs and came over and joined it, curious to see the cause of the
|
|
excitement. The dog-musher wore a mustache, but the other, a taller
|
|
and younger man, was smooth-shaven, his skin rosy from the pounding of
|
|
his blood and the running in the frosty air.
|
|
|
|
White Fang had practically ceased struggling. Now and again he
|
|
resisted spasmodically and to no purpose. He could get little air, and
|
|
that little grew less and less under the merciless grip that ever
|
|
tightened. In spite of his armor of fur, the great vein of his
|
|
throat would have long since been torn open, had not the first grip of
|
|
the bulldog been so low down as to be practically on the chest. It had
|
|
taken Cherokee a long time to shift that grip upward, and this had
|
|
also tended further to clog his jaws with fur and skin-fold.
|
|
|
|
In the meantime, the abysmal brute in Beauty Smith had been rising
|
|
up into his brain and mastering the small bit of sanity that he
|
|
possessed at best. When he saw White Fang's eyes beginning to glaze,
|
|
he knew beyond doubt that the fight was lost. Then he broke loose.
|
|
He sprang upon White Fang and began savagely to kick him. There were
|
|
hisses from the crowd and cries of protest, but that was all. While
|
|
this went on, and Beauty Smith continued to kick White Fang, there was
|
|
a commotion in the crowd. A tall young newcomer was forcing his way
|
|
through, shouldering men right and left without ceremony or
|
|
gentleness. When he broke through into the ring, Beauty Smith was just
|
|
in the act of delivering another kick. All his weight was on one foot,
|
|
and he was in a state of unstable equilibrium. At that moment the
|
|
newcomer's fist landed a smashing blow full in his face. Beauty
|
|
Smith's remaining leg left the ground, and his whole body seemed to
|
|
lift into the air as he turned over backward and struck the snow.
|
|
The newcomer turned upon the crowd.
|
|
|
|
'You cowards!' he cried. 'You beasts!'
|
|
|
|
He was in a rage himself- a sane rage. His gray eyes seemed metallic
|
|
and steel-like as they flashed upon the crowd. Beauty Smith regained
|
|
his feet and came toward him, sniffling and cowardly. The newcomer did
|
|
not understand. He did not know how abject a coward the other was, and
|
|
thought he was coming back intent on fighting. So, with a 'You beast!'
|
|
he smashed Beauty Smith over backward with a second blow in the
|
|
face. Beauty Smith decided that the snow was the safest place for him,
|
|
and lay where he had fallen, making no effort to get up.
|
|
|
|
'Come on, Matt, lend a hand,' the newcomer called to the dog-musher,
|
|
who had followed him into the ring.
|
|
|
|
Both men bent over the dogs. Matt took hold of White Fang, ready
|
|
to pull when Cherokee's jaws should be loosened. This was the
|
|
younger man endeavored to accomplish by clutching the bulldog's jaws
|
|
in his hands and trying to spread them. It was a vain undertaking.
|
|
As he pulled and tugged and wrenched, he kept exclaiming with every
|
|
expulsion of breath, 'Beasts!'
|
|
|
|
The crowd began to grow unruly, and some of the men were
|
|
protesting against the spoiling of the sport; but they were silenced
|
|
when the newcomer lifted his head from his work for a moment and
|
|
glared at them.
|
|
|
|
'You damn beasts!' he finally exploded, and went back to his task.
|
|
|
|
'It's no use, Mr. Scott, you can't break 'm apart that way,' Matt
|
|
said at last.
|
|
|
|
The pair paused and surveyed the locked dogs.
|
|
|
|
'Ain't bleedin much,' Matt announced. 'Ain't got all the way in
|
|
yet.'
|
|
|
|
'But he's liable to any moment,' Scott answered. 'There, did you see
|
|
that! He shifted his grip in a bit.'
|
|
|
|
The younger man's excitement and apprehension for White Fang was
|
|
growing. He struck Cherokee about the head savagely again and again.
|
|
But that did not loosen the jaw. Cherokee wagged the stump of his tail
|
|
in advertisement that he understood the meaning of the blows, but that
|
|
he knew he was himself in the right and only doing his duty by keeping
|
|
his grip.
|
|
|
|
'Won't some of you help?' Scott cried desperately at the crowd.
|
|
|
|
But no help was offered. Instead, the crowd began sarcastically to
|
|
cheer him on and showered him with facetious advice.
|
|
|
|
'You'll have to get a pry,' Matt counseled.
|
|
|
|
The other reached into the holster at his hip, drew his revolver,
|
|
and tried to thrust its muzzle between the bulldog's jaws. He
|
|
shoved, and shoved hard, till the grating of steel against the
|
|
locked teeth could be distinctly heard. Both men were on their
|
|
knees, bending over the dogs. Tim Keenan strode into the ring. He
|
|
paused beside Scott and touched him on the shoulder, saying ominously:
|
|
|
|
'Don't break them teeth, stranger.'
|
|
|
|
'Then I'll break his neck,' Scott retorted, continuing his shoving
|
|
and wedging with the revolver muzzle.
|
|
|
|
'I said don't break them teeth,' the faro-dealer repeated more
|
|
ominously than before.
|
|
|
|
But if it was a bluff he intended, it did not work. Scott never
|
|
desisted in his efforts, though he looked up coolly and asked:
|
|
|
|
'Your dog?'
|
|
|
|
The faro-dealer grunted.
|
|
|
|
'Then get in here and break this grip.'
|
|
|
|
'Well, stranger,' the other drawled irritatingly, 'I don't mind
|
|
telling you that's something I ain't worked out for myself. I don't
|
|
know how to turn the trick.'
|
|
|
|
'Then get out of the way,' was the reply, 'and don't bother me.
|
|
I'm busy.'
|
|
|
|
Tim Keenan continued standing over him, but Scott took no further
|
|
notice of his presence. He had managed to get the muzzle in between
|
|
the jaws on one side and was trying to get it out between the jaws
|
|
on the other side. This accomplished, he pried gently and carefully,
|
|
loosening the jaws a bit at a time, while Matt, a bit at a time,
|
|
extricated White Fang's mangled neck.
|
|
|
|
'Stand by to receive your dog,' was Scott's peremptory order to
|
|
Cherokee's owner.
|
|
|
|
The faro-dealer stooped down obediently and got a firm hold on
|
|
Cherokee.
|
|
|
|
'Now,' Scott warned, giving the final pry.
|
|
|
|
The dogs were drawn apart, the bulldog struggling vigorously.
|
|
|
|
White Fang made several ineffectual efforts to get up. Once he
|
|
gained his feet, but his legs were too weak to sustain him, and he
|
|
slowly wilted and sank back into the snow. His eyes were half
|
|
closed, and the surface of them was glassy. His jaws were apart, and
|
|
through them the tongue protruded, draggled and limp. To all
|
|
appearances he looked like a dog that had been strangled to death.
|
|
Matt examined him.
|
|
|
|
'Just about all in,' he announced; 'but he's breathin' all right.'
|
|
|
|
Beauty Smith had regained his feet and come over to look at White
|
|
Fang.
|
|
|
|
'Matt, how much is a good sled-dog worth?' Scott asked.
|
|
|
|
The dog-musher, still on his knees and stooped over White Fang,
|
|
calculated for a moment.
|
|
|
|
'Three hundred dollars,' he answered.
|
|
|
|
'And how much for one that's all chewed up like this one?' Scott
|
|
asked, nudging White Fang with his foot.
|
|
|
|
'Half of that,' was the dog-musher's judgment.
|
|
|
|
Scott turned from Beauty Smith.
|
|
|
|
'Did you hear, Mr. Beast? I'm going to take your dog from you, and
|
|
I'm going to give you a hundred and fifty for him.'
|
|
|
|
He opened his pocketbook and counted out the bills.
|
|
|
|
Beauty Smith put his hands behind his back, refusing to touch the
|
|
proffered money.
|
|
|
|
'I ain't a-sellin',' he said.
|
|
|
|
'Oh, yes you are,' the other assured him. 'Because I'm buying.
|
|
Here's your money. The dog's mine.'
|
|
|
|
Beauty Smith, his hands still behind him, began to back away.
|
|
|
|
Scott sprang toward him, drawing his fist back to strike. Beauty
|
|
Smith cowered down in anticipation of the blow.
|
|
|
|
'I've got my rights,' he whimpered.
|
|
|
|
'You've forfeited your rights to own that dog,' was the rejoinder.
|
|
'Are you going to take the money? or do I have to hit you again?'
|
|
|
|
'All right,' Beauty Smith spoke up with the alacrity of fear. 'But I
|
|
take the money under protest,' he added. 'The dog's a mint. I ain't
|
|
a-goin' to be robbed. A man's got his rights.'
|
|
|
|
'Correct,' Scott answered, passing the money over to him. 'A man's
|
|
got his rights. But you're not a man. You're a beast.'
|
|
|
|
'Wait till I get back to Dawson,' Beauty Smith threatened. 'I'll
|
|
have the law on you.'
|
|
|
|
'If you open your mouth when you get back to Dawson, I'll have you
|
|
run out of town. Understand?'
|
|
|
|
Beauty Smith replied with a grunt.
|
|
|
|
'Understand?' the other man thundered with abrupt fierceness.
|
|
|
|
'Yes,' Beauty Smith grunted, shrinking away.
|
|
|
|
'Yes, what?'
|
|
|
|
'Yes, sir.' Beauty Smith snarled.
|
|
|
|
'Look out! He'll bite!' someone shouted, and a guffaw of laughter
|
|
went up.
|
|
|
|
Some of the men were already departing; others stood in groups,
|
|
looking on and talking. Tim Keenan joined one of the groups.
|
|
|
|
'Who's that mug?' he asked.
|
|
|
|
'Weedon Scott,' someone answered.
|
|
|
|
'And who in hell is Weedon Scott?' the faro-dealer demanded.
|
|
|
|
'Oh, one of them crack-a-jack mining experts. He's in with all the
|
|
big bugs. If you want to keep out of trouble, you'll steer clear of
|
|
him, that's my talk. He's all hunky with the officials. The Gold
|
|
Commissioner's a special pal of his.'
|
|
|
|
'I thought he must be somebody,' was the faro-dealer's comment.
|
|
'That's why I kept my hands offen him at the start.'
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER FIVE.
|
|
|
|
The Indomitable.
|
|
|
|
'IT'S HOPELESS,' WEEDON Scott confessed.
|
|
|
|
He sat on the step of his cabin and stared at the dog-musher, who
|
|
responded with a shrug that was equally hopeless.
|
|
|
|
Together they looked at White Fang at the end of his stretched
|
|
chain, bristling, snarling, ferocious, straining to get at the
|
|
sled-dogs. Having received sundry lessons from Matt, said lessons
|
|
being imparted by means of a club, the sled-dogs had learned to
|
|
leave White Fang alone, and even when they were lying down at a
|
|
distance, apparently oblivious of his existence.
|
|
|
|
'It's a wolf and there's no taming it,' Weedon Scott announced.
|
|
|
|
'Oh, I don't know about that,' Matt objected. 'Might be a lot of dog
|
|
in 'm for all you can tell. But there's one thing I know sure, an'
|
|
that there's no gettin' away from.'
|
|
|
|
The dog-musher paused and nodded his head confidently at Moosehide
|
|
Mountain.
|
|
|
|
'Well, don't be a miser with what you know,' Scott said sharply,
|
|
after waiting a suitable length of time. 'Spit it out. What is it?'
|
|
|
|
The dog-musher indicated White Fang with a backward thrust of his
|
|
thumb.
|
|
|
|
'Wolf or dog, it's all the same- he's been tamed a'ready.'
|
|
|
|
'No!'
|
|
|
|
'I tell you yes, an' broke to harness. Look close there. D'ye see
|
|
them marks across the chest?'
|
|
|
|
'You're right, Matt. He was a sled-dog before Beauty Smith got
|
|
hold of him.'
|
|
|
|
'An' there's not much reason against his bein' a sled-dog again.'
|
|
|
|
'What d'ye think?' Scott queried eagerly. Then the hope died down as
|
|
he added, shaking his head, 'We've had him two weeks now, and if
|
|
anything, he's wilder than ever at the present moment.'
|
|
|
|
'Give 'm a chance,' Matt counseled. 'Turn 'm loose for a spell.'
|
|
|
|
The other looked at him incredulously.
|
|
|
|
'Yes,' Matt went on, 'I know you've tried to, but you didn't take
|
|
a club.'
|
|
|
|
'You try it then.'
|
|
|
|
The dog-musher secured a club and went over to the chained animal.
|
|
White Fang watched the club after the manner of a caged lion
|
|
watching the whip of its trainer.
|
|
|
|
'See 'm keep his eye on that club,' Matt said. 'That's a good
|
|
sign. He's no fool. Don't dast tackle me so long as I got that club
|
|
handy. He's not clean crazy, sure.'
|
|
|
|
As the man's hand approached the neck, White Fang bristled and
|
|
snarled and crouched down. But while he eyed the approaching hand,
|
|
he at the same time contrived to keep track of the club in the other
|
|
hand, suspended threateningly above him. Matt unsnapped the chain from
|
|
the collar and stepped back.
|
|
|
|
White Fang could scarcely realize that he was free. Many months
|
|
had gone by since he passed into the possession of Beauty Smith, and
|
|
in all that period he had never known a moment of freedom except at
|
|
the times he had been loosed to fight with the other dogs. Immediately
|
|
after such fights he had been imprisoned again.
|
|
|
|
He did not know what to make of it. Perhaps some new deviltry of the
|
|
gods was about to be perpetrated on him. He walked slowly and
|
|
cautiously, prepared to be assailed at any moment. He did not know
|
|
what to do, it was all so unprecedented. He took the precaution to
|
|
sheer off from the two watching gods, and walked carefully to the
|
|
corner of the cabin. Nothing happened. He was plainly perplexed, and
|
|
he came back again, pausing a dozen feet away and regarding the two
|
|
men intently.
|
|
|
|
'Won't he run away?' his new owner asked.
|
|
|
|
Matt shrugged his shoulders. 'Got to take a gamble. Only way to find
|
|
out is find out.'
|
|
|
|
'Poor devil,' Scott murmured pityingly. 'What he needs is some
|
|
show of human kindness.' he added, turning and going into the cabin.
|
|
|
|
He came out with a piece of meat, which he tossed to White Fang.
|
|
He sprang away from it, and from a distance studied it suspiciously.
|
|
|
|
'Hi-yu, Major!' Matt shouted warningly, but too late.
|
|
|
|
Major had made a spring for the meat. At the instant his jaws closed
|
|
on it, White Fang struck him. He was overthrown. Matt rushed in, but
|
|
quicker than he was White Fang. Major staggered to his feet, but the
|
|
blood spouting from his throat reddened the snow in a widening path.
|
|
|
|
'It's too bad, but it served him right,' Scott said hastily.
|
|
|
|
But Matt's foot had already started on its way to kick White Fang.
|
|
There was a leap, a flash of teeth, a sharp exclamation. White Fang,
|
|
snarling fiercely, scrambled backward for several yards, while Matt
|
|
stooped and investigated his leg.
|
|
|
|
'He got me all right,' he announced, pointing to the torn trousers
|
|
and underclothes, and the growing stain of red.
|
|
|
|
'I told you it was hopeless, Matt,' Scott said in a discouraged
|
|
voice. 'I've thought about it off and on, while not wanting to think
|
|
of it. But we've come to it now. It's the only thing to do.'
|
|
|
|
As he talked, with reluctant movements he drew his revolver, threw
|
|
open the cylinder, and assured himself of its content.
|
|
|
|
'Look here, Mr. Scott,' Matt objected; 'that dog's been through
|
|
hell. You can't expect 'm to come out a white an' shining angel.
|
|
Give 'm time.'
|
|
|
|
'Look at Major,' the other rejoined.
|
|
|
|
The dog-musher surveyed the stricken dog. He had sunk down on the
|
|
snow in the circle of his blood, and was plainly in the last gasp.
|
|
|
|
'Served 'm right. You said so yourself, Mr. Scott. He tried to
|
|
take White Fang's meat, an' he's dead-O. That was to be expected. I
|
|
wouldn't give two whoops in hell for a dog that wouldn't fight for his
|
|
own meat.'
|
|
|
|
'But look at yourself, Matt. It's all right about the dogs, but we
|
|
must draw the line somewhere.'
|
|
|
|
'Served me right,' Matt argued stubbornly. 'What 'd I want to kick
|
|
'm for? You said yourself he'd done right. Then I had no right to kick
|
|
'm.'
|
|
|
|
'It would be a mercy to kill him,' Scott insisted. 'He's untamable.'
|
|
|
|
'Now look here, Mr. Scott, give the poor devil a fightin' chance. He
|
|
ain't had no chance yet. He's just come through hell, an' this is
|
|
the first time he's ben loose. Give 'm a fair chance, an' if he
|
|
don't deliver the goods, I'll kill 'm myself. There!'
|
|
|
|
'God knows I don't want to kill him or have him killed,' Scott
|
|
answered, putting away the revolver. 'We'll let him run loose and
|
|
see what kindness can do for him. And here's a try at it.'
|
|
|
|
He walked over to White Fang and began talking to him gently and
|
|
soothingly.
|
|
|
|
'Better have a club handy,' Matt warned.
|
|
|
|
Scott shook his head and went on trying to win White Fang's
|
|
confidence.
|
|
|
|
White Fang was suspicious. Something was impending. He had killed
|
|
this god's dog, bitten his companion god, and what else was to be
|
|
expected than some terrible punishment? But in the face of it he was
|
|
indomitable. He bristled and showed his teeth, his eyes vigilant,
|
|
his whole body wary and prepared for anything. The god had no club, so
|
|
he suffered him to approach quite near. The god's hand had come out
|
|
and was descending on his head. White Fang shrank together and grew
|
|
tense as he crouched under it. Here was danger, some treachery or
|
|
something. He knew the hands of the gods, their proved mastery,
|
|
their cunning to hurt. Besides, there was his old antipathy to being
|
|
touched. He snarled more menacingly, crouched still lower, and still
|
|
the hand descended. He did not want to bite the hand, and he endured
|
|
the peril of it until his instinct surged up in him, mastering him
|
|
with its insatiable yearning for life.
|
|
|
|
Weedon Scott had believed that he was quick enough to avoid any snap
|
|
or slash. But he had yet to learn the remarkable quickness of White
|
|
Fang, who struck with the certainty and swiftness of a coiled snake.
|
|
|
|
Scott cried out sharply with surprise, catching his torn hand and
|
|
holding it tightly in his other hand. Matt uttered a great oath and
|
|
sprang to his side. White Fang crouched down and backed away,
|
|
bristling, showing his fangs, his eyes malignant with menace. Now he
|
|
could expect a beating as fearful as any he had received from Beauty
|
|
Smith.
|
|
|
|
'Here! What are you doing?' Scott cried suddenly.
|
|
|
|
Matt had dashed into the cabin and come out with a rifle.
|
|
|
|
'Nothin',' he said slowly, with a careless calmness that was
|
|
assumed; 'only goin' to keep that promise I made. I reckon it's up
|
|
to me to kill 'm as I said I'd do.'
|
|
|
|
'No you don't!'
|
|
|
|
'Yes I do. Watch me.'
|
|
|
|
As Matt had pleaded for White Fang when he had been bitten, it was
|
|
now Weedon Scott's turn to plead.
|
|
|
|
'You said to give him a chance. Well, give it to him. We've only
|
|
just started, and we can't quit at the beginning. It served me
|
|
right, this time. And- look at him!'
|
|
|
|
White Fang, near the corner of the cabin and forty feet away, was
|
|
snarling with blood-curdling viciousness, not at Scott, but at the
|
|
dog-musher.
|
|
|
|
'Well, I'd be everlastin'ly gosh-swoggled!' was the dog-musher's
|
|
expression of astonishment.
|
|
|
|
'Look at the intelligence of him,' Scott went on hastily. 'He
|
|
knows the meaning of firearms as well as you do. He's got
|
|
intelligence, and we've got to give that intelligence a chance. Put up
|
|
that gun.'
|
|
|
|
'All right, I'm willin',' Matt agreed, leaning the rifle against the
|
|
woodpile.
|
|
|
|
'But will you look at that!' he exclaimed the next moment.
|
|
|
|
White Fang had quieted down and ceased snarling.
|
|
|
|
'This is worth investigatin'. Watch.'
|
|
|
|
Matt reached for the rifle, and at the same moment White Fang
|
|
snarled. He stepped away from the rifle, and White Fang's lifted
|
|
lips descended, covering his teeth.
|
|
|
|
Matt took the rifle and began slowly to raise it to his shoulder.
|
|
White Fang's snarling began with the movement, and increased as the
|
|
movement approached its culmination. But the moment before the rifle
|
|
came to a level with him, he leaped sidewise behind the corner of
|
|
the cabin. Matt stood staring along the sights at the empty space of
|
|
snow which had been occupied by White Fang.
|
|
|
|
The dog-musher put the rifle down solemnly, then turned and looked
|
|
at his employer.
|
|
|
|
'I agree with you, Mr. Scott. That dog's too intelligent to kill.'
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER SIX.
|
|
|
|
The Love-master.
|
|
|
|
AS WHITE FANG WATCHED Weedon Scott approach, he bristled and snarled
|
|
to advertise that he would not submit to punishment. Twenty-four hours
|
|
had passed since he had slashed open the hand that was now bandaged
|
|
and held up by a sling to keep the blood out of it. In the past
|
|
White Fang had experienced delayed punishments, and he apprehended
|
|
that such a one was about to befall him. How could it be otherwise? He
|
|
had committed what was to him sacrilege, sunk his fangs in the holy
|
|
flesh of a god, and of a white-skinned superior god at that. In the
|
|
nature of things, and of intercourse with gods, something terrible
|
|
awaited him.
|
|
|
|
The god sat down several feet away. White Fang could see nothing
|
|
dangerous in that. When the gods administered punishment they stood on
|
|
their legs. Besides, this god had no club, no whip, no firearm. And
|
|
furthermore, he himself was free. No chain nor stick bound him. He
|
|
could escape into safety while the god was scrambling to his feet.
|
|
In the meantime he would wait and see.
|
|
|
|
The god remained quiet, made no movement; and White Fang's snarl
|
|
slowly dwindled to a growl that ebbed down in his throat and ceased.
|
|
Then the god spoke, and at the first sound of his voice, the hair rose
|
|
on White Fang's neck and the growl rushed up in his throat. But the
|
|
god made no hostile movement and went on calmly talking. For a time
|
|
White Fang growled in unison with him, a correspondence of rhythm
|
|
being established between growl and voice. But the god talked on
|
|
interminably. He talked to White Fang as White Fang had never been
|
|
talked to before. He talked softly and soothingly, with a gentleness
|
|
that somehow, somewhere, touched White Fang. In spite of himself and
|
|
all the pricking warnings of his instinct, White Fang began to have
|
|
confidence in this god. He had a feeling of security that was belied
|
|
by all his experience with men.
|
|
|
|
After a long time, the god got up and went into the cabin. White
|
|
Fang scanned him apprehensively when he came out. He had neither
|
|
whip nor club nor weapon. Nor was his injured hand behind his back
|
|
hiding something. He sat down as before, in the same spot, several
|
|
feet away. He held out a small piece of meat. White Fang pricked up
|
|
his ears and investigated it suspiciously, managing to look at the
|
|
same time both at the meat and the god, alert for any over tact, his
|
|
body tense and ready to spring away at the first sign of hostility.
|
|
|
|
Still the punishment delayed. The god merely held near to his nose a
|
|
piece of meat. And about the meat there seemed nothing wrong. Still
|
|
White Fang suspected; and though the meat was proffered to him with
|
|
short inviting thrusts of the hand, he refused to touch it. The gods
|
|
were all-wise, and there was no telling what masterful treachery
|
|
lurked behind that apparently harmless piece of meat. In past
|
|
experience, especially in dealing with squaws, meat and punishment had
|
|
often been disastrously related.
|
|
|
|
In the end, the god tossed the meat on the snow at White Fang's
|
|
feet. He smelled the meat carefully; but he did not look at it.
|
|
While he smelled it he kept his eyes on the god. Nothing happened.
|
|
He took the meat into his mouth and swallowed it. Still nothing
|
|
happened. The god was actually offering him another piece of meat.
|
|
Again he refused to take it from the hand, and again it was tossed
|
|
to him. This was repeated a number of times. But there came a time
|
|
when the god refused to toss it. He kept it in his hand and
|
|
steadfastly proffered it.
|
|
|
|
The meat was good meat, and White Fang was hungry. Bit by bit,
|
|
infinitely cautious, he approached the hand. At last the time came
|
|
that he decided to eat the meat from the hand. He never took his
|
|
eyes from the god, thrusting his head forward with ears flattened back
|
|
and hair involuntary rising and cresting on his neck. Also a low growl
|
|
rumbled in his throat as warning that he was not to be trifled with.
|
|
He ate the meat, and nothing happened. Piece by piece, he ate all
|
|
the meat, and nothing happened. Still the punishment delayed.
|
|
|
|
He licked his chops and waited. The god went on talking. In his
|
|
voice was kindness- something of which White Fang had no experience
|
|
whatever. And within him it aroused feelings which he had likewise
|
|
never experienced before. He was aware of a certain strange
|
|
satisfaction, as though some need were being gratified, as though some
|
|
void in his being were being filled. Then again came the prod of his
|
|
instinct and the warning of past experience. The gods were ever
|
|
crafty, and they had unguessed ways of attaining their ends.
|
|
|
|
Ah, he had thought so! There it came now, the god's hand, cunning to
|
|
hurt, thrusting out at him, descending upon his head. But the god went
|
|
on talking. His voice was soft and soothing. In spite of the
|
|
menacing hand, the voice inspired confidence. And in spite of the
|
|
assuring voice, the hand inspired distrust. White Fang was torn by
|
|
conflicting feelings, impulses. It seemed he would fly to pieces, so
|
|
terrible was the control he was exerting, holding together by an
|
|
unwonted indecision the counter-forces that struggled within him for
|
|
mastery.
|
|
|
|
He compromised. He snarled and bristled and flattened his ears.
|
|
But he neither snapped nor sprang away. The hand descended. Nearer and
|
|
nearer it came. It touched the ends of his upstanding hair. He
|
|
shrank down under it. It followed down after him, pressing more
|
|
closely against him. Shrinking, almost shivering, he still managed
|
|
to hold himself together. It was a torment, this hand that touched him
|
|
and violated his instinct. He could not forget in a day all the evil
|
|
that had been wrought him at the hands of men. But it was the will
|
|
of the god, and he strove to submit.
|
|
|
|
The hand lifted and descended again in a patting, caressing
|
|
movement. This continued, but every time the hand lifted the hair
|
|
lifted under it. And every time the hand descended, the ears flattened
|
|
down and a cavernous growl surged in his throat. White Fang growled
|
|
and growled with insistent warning. By this means he announced that he
|
|
was prepared to retaliate for any hurt he might receive. There was
|
|
no telling when the god's ulterior motive might be disclosed. At any
|
|
moment that soft, confidence-inspiring voice might break forth in a
|
|
roar of wrath, that gentle and caressing hand transform itself into
|
|
a viselike grip to hold him helpless and administer punishment.
|
|
|
|
But the god talked on softly, and ever the hand rose and fell with
|
|
non-hostile pats. White Fang expressed dual feelings. It was
|
|
distasteful to his instinct. It restrained him, opposed the will of
|
|
him toward personal liberty. And yet it was not physically painful. On
|
|
the contrary, it was even pleasant, in a physical way. The patting
|
|
movement slowly and carefully changed to a rubbing of the ears about
|
|
their bases, and the physical pleasure even increased a little. Yet he
|
|
continued to fear, and he stood on guard, expectant of unguessed evil,
|
|
alternately suffering and enjoying as one feeling or the other came
|
|
uppermost and swayed him.
|
|
|
|
'Well, I'll be gosh-swoggled!'
|
|
|
|
So spoke Matt, coming out of the cabin, his sleeves rolled up, a pan
|
|
of dirty dish-water in his hands, arrested in the act of emptying
|
|
the pan by the sight of Weedon Scott patting White Fang.
|
|
|
|
At the instant his voice broke the silence, White Fang leaped
|
|
back, snarling savagely at him.
|
|
|
|
Matt regarded his employer with grieved disapproval.
|
|
|
|
'If you don't mind my expressin' my feelin's, Mr. Scott, I'll make
|
|
free to say you're seventeen kinds of a damn fool an' all of 'em
|
|
different, and then some.'
|
|
|
|
Weedon Scott smiled with a superior air, gained his feet and
|
|
walked over to White Fang. He talked soothingly to him, but not for
|
|
long, then slowly put out his hand, rested it on White Fang's head,
|
|
and resumed the interrupted patting. White Fang endured it, keeping
|
|
his eyes fixed suspiciously, not upon the man that patted him, but
|
|
upon the man that stood in the doorway.
|
|
|
|
'You may be a number one, tip-top minin' expert, all right all
|
|
right,' the dog-musher delivered himself oracularly, 'but you missed
|
|
the chance of your life when you was a boy an' didn't run off an' join
|
|
a circus.'
|
|
|
|
White Fang snarled at the sound of his voice, but this time did
|
|
not leap away from under the hand that was caressing his head and
|
|
the back of his neck with long, soothing strokes.
|
|
|
|
It was the beginning of the end for White Fang- the ending of the
|
|
old life and the reign of hate. A new and incomprehensibly fairer life
|
|
was dawning. It required much thinking and endless patience on the
|
|
part of Weedon Scott to accomplish this. And on the part of White Fang
|
|
it required nothing less than a revolution. He had to ignore the urges
|
|
and promptings of instinct and reason, defy experience, give the lie
|
|
to life itself.
|
|
|
|
Life, as he had known it, not only had had no place in it for much
|
|
that he now did, but all the currents had gone counter to those to
|
|
which he now abandoned himself. In short, when all things were
|
|
considered, he had to achieve an orientation far vaster than the one
|
|
he had achieved at the time he came voluntarily in from the Wild and
|
|
accepted Gray Beaver as his lord. At that time he was a mere puppy,
|
|
soft from the making, without form, ready for the thumb of
|
|
circumstance to begin its work upon him. But now it was different. The
|
|
thumb of circumstance had done its work only too well. By it he had
|
|
been formed and hardened into the Fighting Wolf, fierce and
|
|
implacable, unloving and unlovable. To accomplish the change was
|
|
like a reflux of being, and this when the plasticity of youth was no
|
|
longer his; when the fibre of him had become tough and knotty; when
|
|
the warp and the woof of him had made of him an adamantine texture,
|
|
harsh and unyielding; when the face of his spirit had become iron
|
|
and all his instincts and axioms had crystallized into set rules,
|
|
cautions, dislikes, and desires.
|
|
|
|
Yet again, in this new orientation, it was the thumb of circumstance
|
|
that pressed and prodded him, softening that which had become hard and
|
|
remoulding it into fairer form. Weedon Scott was in truth this
|
|
thumb. He had gone to the roots of White Fang's nature, and with
|
|
kindness touched to life potencies that had languished and well-nigh
|
|
perished. One such potency was love. It took the place of like,
|
|
which latter had been the highest feeling that thrilled him in his
|
|
intercourse with the gods.
|
|
|
|
But this love did not come in a day. It began with like and out of
|
|
it slowly developed. White Fang did not run away, though he was
|
|
allowed to remain loose, because he liked this new god. This was
|
|
certainly better than the life he had lived in the cage of Beauty
|
|
Smith, and it was necessary that he should have some god. The lordship
|
|
of man was a need of his nature. The seal of his dependence on man had
|
|
been set upon him in that early day when he turned his back on the
|
|
Wild and crawled to Gray Beaver's feet to receive the expected
|
|
beating. This seal had been stamped upon him again, and
|
|
ineradicably, on his second return from the Wild, when the long famine
|
|
was over and there was fish once more in the village of Gray Beaver.
|
|
|
|
And so, because he needed a god and because he preferred Weedon
|
|
Scott to Beauty Smith, White Fang remained. In acknowledgment of
|
|
fealty, he proceeded to take upon himself the guardianship of his
|
|
master's property. He prowled about the cabin while the sled-dogs
|
|
slept, and the first night-visitor to the cabin fought him off with
|
|
a club until Weedon Scott came to the rescue. But White Fang soon
|
|
learned to differentiate between thieves and honest men, to appraise
|
|
the true value of step and carriage. The man who traveled,
|
|
loud-stepping, the direct line to the cabin door, he let alone- though
|
|
he watched him vigilantly until the door opened and he received the
|
|
indorsement of the master. But the man who went softly, by
|
|
circuitous ways, peering with caution, seeking after secrecy- that was
|
|
the man who received no suspension of judgment from White Fang, and
|
|
who went away abruptly, hurriedly, and without dignity.
|
|
|
|
Weedon Scott had set himself the task of redeeming White Fang- or
|
|
rather, of redeeming mankind from the wrong it had done White Fang. It
|
|
was a matter of principle and conscience. He felt that the ill done
|
|
White Fang was a debt incurred by man and that it must be paid. So
|
|
he went out of his way to be especially kind to the Fighting Wolf.
|
|
Each day he made it a point to caress and pet White Fang, and to do it
|
|
at length.
|
|
|
|
At first suspicious and hostile, White Fang grew to like this
|
|
petting. But there was one thing that he never outgrew- his
|
|
growling. Growl he would, from the moment the petting began until it
|
|
ended. But it was a growl with a new note in it. A stranger could
|
|
not hear this note, and to such a stranger the growling of White
|
|
Fang was an exhibition of primordial savagery, nerve-racking and
|
|
blood-curdling. But White Fang's throat had become harsh-fibred from
|
|
the making of ferocious sounds through the many years since his
|
|
first little rasp of anger in the lair of his cubhood, and he could
|
|
not soften the sounds of that throat now to express the gentleness
|
|
he felt. Nevertheless, Weedon Scott's ear and sympathy were fine
|
|
enough to catch the new note all but drowned in the fierceness- the
|
|
note that was the faintest hint of a croon of content and that none
|
|
but he could hear.
|
|
|
|
As the days went by, the evolution of like into love was
|
|
accelerated. White Fang himself began to grow aware of it, though in
|
|
his consciousness he knew not what love was. It manifested itself to
|
|
him as a void in his being- a hungry, aching, yearning void that
|
|
clamored to be filled. It was a pain and an unrest; and it received
|
|
easement only by the touch of the new god's presence. At such times
|
|
love was a joy to him, a wild, keen- thrilling satisfaction. But
|
|
when away from his god, the pain and the unrest returned; the void
|
|
in him sprang up and pressed against him with its emptiness, and the
|
|
hunger gnawed and gnawed unceasingly.
|
|
|
|
White Fang was in the process of finding himself. In spite of the
|
|
maturity of his years and of the savage rigidity of the mould that had
|
|
formed him, his nature was undergoing an expansion. There was a
|
|
burgeoning within him of strange feelings and unwonted impulses. His
|
|
old code of conduct was changing. In the past he had liked comfort and
|
|
surcease from pain, disliked discomfort and pain, and he had
|
|
adjusted his actions accordingly. But now it was different. Because of
|
|
this new feeling within him, he ofttimes elected discomfort and pain
|
|
for the sake of his god. Thus, in the early morning, instead of
|
|
roaming and foraging, or lying in a sheltered nook, he would wait
|
|
for hours on the cheerless cabin-stoop for a sight of the god's
|
|
face. At night, when the god returned home, White Fang would leave the
|
|
warm sleeping place he had burrowed in the snow in order to receive
|
|
the friendly snap of fingers and the word of greeting. Meat, even meat
|
|
itself, he would forego to be with his god, to receive a caress from
|
|
him or to accompany him down into the town.
|
|
|
|
Like had been replaced by love. And love was the plummet dropped
|
|
down into the deeps of him where like had never gone. And
|
|
responsive, out of his deep's had come the new thing- love. That which
|
|
was given unto him did he return. This was a god indeed, a love-god, a
|
|
warm and radiant god, in whose light White Fang's nature expanded as a
|
|
flower expands under the sun.
|
|
|
|
But White Fang was not demonstrative. He was too old, too firmly
|
|
moulded, to become adept at expressing himself in new ways. He was too
|
|
self-possessed, too strongly poised in his own isolation. Too long had
|
|
he cultivated reticence, aloofness, and moroseness. He had never
|
|
barked in his life, and he could not now learn to bark a welcome
|
|
when his god approached. He was never in the way, never extravagant
|
|
nor foolish in the expression of his love. He never ran to meet his
|
|
god. He waited at a distance; but he always waited, was always
|
|
there. His love partook of the nature of worship, dumb,
|
|
inarticulate, a silent adoration. Only by the steady regard of his
|
|
eyes did he express his love, and by the unceasing following with
|
|
his eyes of his god's movement. Also, at times, when his god looked at
|
|
him and spoke to him, he betrayed an awkward self-consciousness,
|
|
caused by the struggle of his love to express itself and his
|
|
physical inability to express it.
|
|
|
|
He learned to adjust himself in many ways to his new mode of life.
|
|
It was borne in upon him that he must let his master's dogs alone. Yet
|
|
his dominant nature asserted itself, and he had first to thrash them
|
|
into an acknowledgment of his superiority and leadership. This
|
|
accomplished, he had little trouble with them. They gave trail to
|
|
him when he came and went or walked among them, and when he asserted
|
|
his will they obeyed.
|
|
|
|
In the same way, he came to tolerate Matt- as a possession of his
|
|
master. His master rarely fed him; Matt did that, it was his business;
|
|
yet White Fang divined that it was his master who thus fed him
|
|
vicariously. Matt it was who tried to put him into the harness and
|
|
make him haul sled with the other dogs. But Matt failed. It was not
|
|
until Weedon Scott put the harness on White Fang and worked him,
|
|
that he understood. He took it as his master's will that Matt should
|
|
drive him and work him just as he drove and worked his master's
|
|
other dogs.
|
|
|
|
Different from the Mackenzie toboggans were the Klondike sleds
|
|
with runners under them. And different was the method of driving the
|
|
dogs. There was no fan-formation of the team. The dogs worked in
|
|
single file, one behind another, hauling on double traces. And here,
|
|
in the Klondike, the leader was indeed the leader. The wisest as
|
|
well as strongest dog was the leader, and the team obeyed him and
|
|
feared him. That White Fang should quickly gain the post was
|
|
inevitable. He could not be satisfied with less, as Matt learned after
|
|
much inconvenience and trouble. White Fang picked out the post for
|
|
himself, and Matt backed his judgment with strong language after the
|
|
experiment had been tried. But, though he worked in the sled in the
|
|
day, White Fang did not forego the guarding of his master's property
|
|
in the night. Thus he was on duty all the time, ever vigilant and
|
|
faithful, the most valuable of all the dogs.
|
|
|
|
'Makin' free to spit out what's in me,' Matt said, one day, 'I beg
|
|
to state that you was a wise guy all right when you paid the price you
|
|
did for that dog. You clean swindled Beauty Smith on top of pushin'
|
|
his face in with your fist.'
|
|
|
|
A recrudescence of anger glinted in Weedon Scott's gray eyes, and he
|
|
muttered savagely, 'The beast!'
|
|
|
|
In the late spring a great trouble came to White Fang. Without
|
|
warning, the love-master disappeared. There had been warning, but
|
|
White Fang was unversed in such things and did not understand the
|
|
packing of a grip. He remembered afterward that this packing had
|
|
preceded the master's disappearance; but at the time he suspected
|
|
nothing. That night he waited for the master to return. At midnight
|
|
the chill wind that blew drove him to shelter at the rear of the
|
|
cabin. There he drowsed, only half asleep, his ears keyed for the
|
|
first sound of the familiar step. But, at two in the morning, his
|
|
anxiety drove him out to the cold front stoop, where he crouched and
|
|
waited.
|
|
|
|
But no master came. In the morning the door opened and Matt
|
|
stepped outside. White Fang gazed at him wistfully. There was no
|
|
common speech by which he might learn what he wanted to know. The days
|
|
came and went, but never the master. White Fang, who had never known
|
|
sickness, became so sick that Matt was finally compelled to bring
|
|
him inside the cabin. Also, in writing to his employer, Matt devoted a
|
|
postscript to White Fang.
|
|
|
|
Weedon Scott, reading the letter down in Circle City, came upon
|
|
the following.
|
|
|
|
'That dam wolf won't work. Won't eat. Ain't got no spunk left. All
|
|
the dogs is licking him. Wants to know what has become of you, and I
|
|
don't know how to tell him. Mebbe he is going to die.'
|
|
|
|
It was as Matt had said. White Fang had ceased eating, lost heart,
|
|
and allowed every dog of the team to thrash him. In the cabin he lay
|
|
on the floor near the stove, without interest in food, in Matt, nor in
|
|
life. Matt might talk gently to him or swear at him, it was all the
|
|
same; he never did more than turn his dull eyes upon the man, then
|
|
drop his head back to its customary position on his forepaws.
|
|
|
|
And then, one night, Matt, reading to himself with moving lips and
|
|
mumbled sounds, was startled by a low whine from White Fang. He had
|
|
got upon his feet, his ears cocked toward the door, and he was
|
|
listening intently. A moment later, Matt heard a footstep. The door
|
|
opened, and Weedon Scott stepped in. The two men shook hands. Then
|
|
Scott looked around the room.
|
|
|
|
'Where's the wolf?' he asked.
|
|
|
|
Then he discovered him, standing where he had been lying, near to
|
|
the stove. He had not rushed forward after the manner of other dogs.
|
|
He stood, watching and waiting.
|
|
|
|
'Holy Smoke!' Matt exclaimed. 'Look at 'm wag his tail!'
|
|
|
|
Weedon Scott strode half across the room toward him, at the same
|
|
time calling him. White Fang came to him, not with a great bound,
|
|
yet quickly. He was awkward from self-consciousness, but as he drew
|
|
near, his eyes took on a strange expression. Something, an
|
|
incommunicable vastness of feeling, rose up into his eyes as a light
|
|
and shone forth.
|
|
|
|
'He never looked at me that way all the time you was gone,' Matt
|
|
commented.
|
|
|
|
Weedon Scott did not hear. He was squatting down on his heels,
|
|
face to face with White Fang and petting him- rubbing at the roots
|
|
of the ears, making long, caressing strokes down the neck to the
|
|
shoulders, tapping the spine gently with the balls of his fingers. And
|
|
White Fang was growling responsively, the crooning note of the growl
|
|
more pronounced than ever.
|
|
|
|
But that was not all. What of his joy, the great love in him, ever
|
|
surging and struggling to express itself, succeeded in finding a new
|
|
mode of expression. He suddenly thrust his head forward and nudged his
|
|
way in between the master's arm and body. And here, confined, hidden
|
|
from view all except his ears, no longer growling, he continued to
|
|
nudge and snuggle.
|
|
|
|
The two men looked at each other. Scott's eyes were shining.
|
|
|
|
'Gosh!' said Matt in an awe-stricken voice.
|
|
|
|
A moment later, when he had recovered himself, he said, 'I always
|
|
insisted that wolf was a dog. Look at 'm!'
|
|
|
|
With the return of the love-master, White Fang's recovery was rapid.
|
|
Two nights and a day he spent in the cabin. Then he sallied forth. The
|
|
sled-dogs had forgotten his prowess. They remembered only the
|
|
latest, which was his weakness and sickness. At the sight of him as he
|
|
came out of the cabin, they sprang about him.
|
|
|
|
'Talk about your rough-houses,' Matt murmured gleefully, standing in
|
|
the doorway and looking on. 'Give 'm hell, you wolf! Give 'm hell!-
|
|
and then some!'
|
|
|
|
White Fang did not need the encouragement. The return of the
|
|
love-master was enough. Life was flowing through him again, splendid
|
|
and indomitable. He fought from sheer joy, finding in it an expression
|
|
of much that he felt and that otherwise was without speech. There
|
|
could be but one ending. The team dispersed in ignominious defeat, and
|
|
it was not until after dark that the dogs came sneaking back, one by
|
|
one, by meekness and humility signifying their fealty to White Fang.
|
|
|
|
Having learned to snuggle, White Fang was guilty of it often. It was
|
|
the final word. He could not go beyond it. The one thing of which he
|
|
had always been particularly jealous, was his head. He had always
|
|
disliked to have it touched. It was the Wild in him, the fear of
|
|
hurt and of the trap, that had given rise to the panicky impulses to
|
|
avoid contacts. It was the mandate of his instinct that that head must
|
|
be free. And now, with the love-master, his snuggling was the
|
|
deliberate act of putting himself into position of hopeless
|
|
helplessness. It was an expression of perfect confidence, of
|
|
absolute self-surrender, as though he said. 'I put myself into thy
|
|
hands. Work thou thy will with me.'
|
|
|
|
One night, not long after the return, Scott and Matt sat at a game
|
|
of cribbage preliminary to going to bed. 'Fifteen- two, fifteen-
|
|
four an' a pair makes six,' Matt was pegging up, when there was an
|
|
outcry and sound of snarling without. They looked at each other as
|
|
they started to rise to their feet.
|
|
|
|
'The wolf's nailed somebody,' Matt said.
|
|
|
|
A wild scream of fear and anguish hastened them. 'Bring a light!'
|
|
Scott shouted, as he sprang outside.
|
|
|
|
Matt followed with the lamp, and by its light they saw a man lying
|
|
on his back in the snow. His arms were folded, one above the other,
|
|
across his face and throat. Thus he was trying to shield himself
|
|
from White Fang's teeth. And there was need for it. White Fang was
|
|
in a rage, wickedly making the attack on the most vulnerable spot.
|
|
From shoulder to wrist of the crossed arms, the coat-sleeve, blue
|
|
flannel shirt and undershirt were ripped in rags, while the arms
|
|
themselves were terribly slashed and streaming blood.
|
|
|
|
All this the two men saw in the first instant. The next instant
|
|
Weedon Scott had White Fang by the throat and was dragging him
|
|
clear. White Fang struggled and snarled, but made no attempt to
|
|
bite, while he quickly quieted down at a sharp word from his master.
|
|
|
|
Matt helped the man to his feet. As he arose he lowered his
|
|
crossed arms, exposing the bestial face of Beauty Smith. The
|
|
dog-musher let go of him precipitately, with action similar to that of
|
|
a man who has picked up live fire. Beauty Smith blinked in the
|
|
lamplight and looked about him. He caught sight of White Fang and
|
|
terror rushed into his face.
|
|
|
|
At the same moment Matt noticed two objects lying in the snow. He
|
|
held the lamp close to them, indicating them with his toe for his
|
|
employer's benefit- a steel dog-chain and a stout club.
|
|
|
|
Weedon Scott saw and nodded. Not a word was spoken. The dog-musher
|
|
laid his hand on Beauty Smith's shoulder and faced him to the
|
|
right-about. No word needed to be spoken. Beauty Smith started.
|
|
|
|
In the meantime the love-master was patting White Fang and talking
|
|
to him.
|
|
|
|
'Tried to steal you, eh? And you wouldn't have it! Well, well, he
|
|
made a mistake, didn't he?'
|
|
|
|
'Must 'a' thought he had hold of seventeen devils,' the dog-musher
|
|
sniggered.
|
|
|
|
White Fang, still wrought up and bristling, growled and growled, the
|
|
hair slowly lying down, the crooning note remote and dim, but
|
|
growing in his throat.
|
|
|
|
PART FIVE.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER ONE.
|
|
|
|
The Long Trail.
|
|
|
|
IT WAS IN THE AIR. White Fang sensed the coming calamity, even
|
|
before there was tangible evidence of it. In vague ways it was borne
|
|
in upon him that a change was impending. He knew not how nor why,
|
|
yet he got his feel of the oncoming event from the gods themselves. In
|
|
ways subtler than they knew, they betrayed their intentions to the
|
|
wolf-dog that haunted the cabin-stoop, and that, though he never
|
|
came inside the cabin, knew what went on inside their brains.
|
|
|
|
'Listen to that, will you!' the dog-musher exclaimed at supper one
|
|
night.
|
|
|
|
Weedon Scott listened. Through the door came a low, anxious whine,
|
|
like a sobbing under the breath that has just grown audible. Then came
|
|
the long sniff, as White Fang reassured himself that his god was still
|
|
inside and had not yet taken himself off in mysterious and solitary
|
|
flight.
|
|
|
|
'I do believe that wolf's on to you,' the dog-musher said.
|
|
|
|
Weedon Scott looked across at his companion with eyes that almost
|
|
pleaded, though this was given the lie by his words.
|
|
|
|
'What the devil can I do with a wolf in California?' he demanded.
|
|
|
|
'That's what I say,' Matt answered. 'What the devil can you do
|
|
with a wolf in California?'
|
|
|
|
But this did not satisfy Weedon Scott. The other seemed to be
|
|
judging him in a non-committal sort of way.
|
|
|
|
'White-man's dogs would have no show against him,' Scott went on.
|
|
'He'd kill them on sight. If he didn't bankrupt me with damage
|
|
suits, the authorities would take him away from me and electrocute
|
|
him.'
|
|
|
|
'He's a downright murderer, I know,' was the dog-musher's comment.
|
|
|
|
Weedon Scott looked at him suspiciously.
|
|
|
|
'It would never do,' he said decisively.
|
|
|
|
'It would never do,' Matt concurred. 'Why, you'd have to hire a
|
|
man specially to take care of 'm.'
|
|
|
|
The other's suspicion was allayed. He nodded cheerfully. In the
|
|
silence that followed, the low, half-sobbing whine was heard at the
|
|
door and then the long, questing sniff.
|
|
|
|
'There's no denyin' he thinks a hell of a lot of you,' Matt said.
|
|
|
|
The other glared at him in sudden wrath. 'Damn it all, man! I know
|
|
my own mind and what's best!'
|
|
|
|
'I'm agreein' with you, only...'
|
|
|
|
'Only what?' Scott snapped out.
|
|
|
|
'Only...' the dog-musher began softly, then changed his mind and
|
|
betrayed a rising anger of his own, 'Well, you needn't get so
|
|
all-fired het up about it. Judgin' by your actions one'd think you
|
|
didn't know your own mind.'
|
|
|
|
Weedon Scott debated with himself for a while, and then said more
|
|
gently: 'You are right, Matt. I don't know my own mind, and that's
|
|
what's the trouble.'
|
|
|
|
Why, it would be rank ridiculousness for me to take that dog along,'
|
|
he broke out after another pause.
|
|
|
|
'I'm agreein' with you,' was Matt's answer, and again his employer
|
|
was not quite satisfied with him.
|
|
|
|
'But how in the name of the great Sardanapalus he knows you're goin'
|
|
is what gets me,' the dog-musher continued innocently.
|
|
|
|
'It's beyond me, Matt,' Scott answered, with a mournful shake of the
|
|
head.
|
|
|
|
Then came the day when, through the open cabin door, White Fang
|
|
saw the fatal grip on the floor and the love-master packing things
|
|
into it. Also, there were comings and goings, and the erstwhile placid
|
|
atmosphere of the cabin was vexed with strange perturbations and
|
|
unrest. Here was indubitable evidence. White Fang had already sensed
|
|
it. He now reasoned it. His god was preparing for another flight.
|
|
And since he had not taken him with him before, so, now, he could look
|
|
to be left behind.
|
|
|
|
That night he lifted the long wolf-howl. As he had howled, in his
|
|
puppy days, when he fled back from the Wild to the village to find
|
|
it vanished and naught but a rubbish-heap to mark the site of Gray
|
|
Beaver's tepee, so now he pointed his muzzle to the cold stars and
|
|
told to them his woe.
|
|
|
|
Inside the cabin the two men had just gone to bed.
|
|
|
|
'He's gone off his food again,' Matt remarked from his bunk.
|
|
|
|
There was a grunt from Weedon Scott's bunk, and a stir of blankets.
|
|
|
|
'From the way he cut up the other time you went away, I wouldn't
|
|
wonder this time but what he died.'
|
|
|
|
The blankets in the other bunk stirred irritably.
|
|
|
|
'Oh, shut up!' Scott cried out through the darkness. 'You nag
|
|
worse than a woman.'
|
|
|
|
'I'm agreein' with you,' the dog-musher answered, and Weedon Scott
|
|
was not quite sure whether or not the other had snickered.
|
|
|
|
The next day White Fang's anxiety and restlessness were even more
|
|
pronounced. He dogged his master's heels whenever he left the cabin,
|
|
and haunted the front stoop when he remained inside. Through the
|
|
open door he could catch glimpses of the luggage on the floor. The
|
|
grip had been joined by two large canvas bags and a box. Matt was
|
|
rolling the master's blankets and fur robe inside a small tarpaulin.
|
|
White Fang whined as he watched the operation.
|
|
|
|
Later on, two Indians arrived. He watched them closely as they
|
|
shouldered the luggage and were led off down the hill by Matt, who
|
|
carried the bedding and the grip. But White Fang did not follow
|
|
them. The master was still in the cabin. After a time, Matt
|
|
returned. The master came to the door and called White Fang inside.
|
|
|
|
'You poor devil,' he said gently, rubbing White Fang's ears and
|
|
tapping his spine. 'I'm hitting the long trail, old man, where you
|
|
cannot follow. Now give me a growl- the last, good, good-by growl.'
|
|
|
|
But White Fang refused to growl. Instead, and after a wistful,
|
|
searching look, he snuggled in, burrowing his head out of sight
|
|
between the master's arm and body.
|
|
|
|
'There she blows!' Matt cried. From the Yukon arose the hoarse
|
|
bellowing of a river steamboat. 'You've got to cut it short. Be sure
|
|
and lock the front door. I'll go out the back. Get a move on!'
|
|
|
|
The two doors slammed at the same moment, and Weedon Scott waited
|
|
for Matt to come around to the front. From inside the door came a
|
|
low whining and sobbing. Then there were long, deep-drawn sniffs.
|
|
|
|
'You must take good care of him, Matt,' Scott said, as they
|
|
started down the hill. 'Write and let me know how he gets along.'
|
|
|
|
'Sure,' the dog-musher answered. 'But listen to that, will you!'
|
|
|
|
Both men stopped. White Fang was howling as dogs howl when their
|
|
masters lie dead. He was voicing an utter woe, his cry bursting upward
|
|
in great, heartbreaking rushes, dying down into quavering misery,
|
|
and bursting upward again with rush upon rush of grief.
|
|
|
|
The Aurora was the first steamboat of the year for the Outside,
|
|
and her decks were jammed with prosperous adventurers and broken
|
|
gold seekers, all equally as mad to get to the Outside as they had
|
|
been originally to get to the Inside. Near the gangplank, Scott was
|
|
shaking hands with Matt, who was preparing to go ashore. But Matt's
|
|
hand went limp in the other's grasp as his gaze shot past and remained
|
|
fixed on something behind him. Scott turned to see. Sitting on the
|
|
deck several feet away and watching wistfully was White Fang.
|
|
|
|
The dog-musher swore softly, in awe-stricken accents. Scott could
|
|
only look in wonder.
|
|
|
|
'Did you lock the front door?' Matt demanded.
|
|
|
|
The other nodded, and asked, 'How about the back?'
|
|
|
|
'You just bet I did,' was the fervent reply.
|
|
|
|
White Fang flattened his ears ingratiatingly, but remained where
|
|
he was, making no attempt to approach.
|
|
|
|
'I'll have to take 'm ashore with me.'
|
|
|
|
Matt made a couple of steps toward White Fang, but the latter slid
|
|
away from him. The dog-musher made a rush of it, and White Fang dodged
|
|
between the legs of a group of men. Ducking, turning, doubling, he
|
|
slid about the deck, eluding the other's efforts to capture him.
|
|
|
|
But when the love-master spoke, White Fang came to him with prompt
|
|
obedience.
|
|
|
|
'Won't come to the hand that's fed 'm all these months,' the
|
|
dog-musher muttered resentfully. 'And you- you ain't never fed after
|
|
them first days of gettin' acquainted. I'm blamed if I can see how
|
|
he works it out that you're the boss.'
|
|
|
|
Scott, who had been patting White Fang, suddenly bent closer and
|
|
pointed out fresh-made cuts on his muzzle, and a gash between the
|
|
eyes.
|
|
|
|
Matt bent over and passed his hand along White Fang's belly.
|
|
|
|
'We plumb forgot the windows. He's all cut an' gouged underneath.
|
|
Must butted clean through it, b'gosh!'
|
|
|
|
But Weedon Scott was not listening. He was thinking rapidly. The
|
|
Aurora's whistle hooted a final announcement of departure. Men were
|
|
scurrying down the gangplank to the shore. Matt loosened the bandana
|
|
from his own neck and started to put it around White Fang's. Scott
|
|
grasped the dog-musher's hand.
|
|
|
|
'Good-by, Matt, old man. About the wolf- you needn't write. You see,
|
|
I've...'
|
|
|
|
'What!' the dog-musher exploded. 'You don't mean to say...'
|
|
|
|
'The very thing I mean. Here's your bandana. I'll write to you about
|
|
him.'
|
|
|
|
Matt paused halfway down the gangplank.
|
|
|
|
'He'll never stand the climate!' he shouted back. 'Unless you clip
|
|
'm in warm weather!'
|
|
|
|
The gangplank was hauled in, and the Aurora swung out from the bank.
|
|
Weedon Scott waved a last good-by. Then he turned and bent over
|
|
White Fang, standing by his side.
|
|
|
|
'Now growl, damn you, growl,' he said, as he patted the responsive
|
|
head and rubbed the flattening ears.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER TWO.
|
|
|
|
The Southland.
|
|
|
|
WHITE FANG LANDED from the steamer in San Francisco. He was
|
|
appalled. Deep in him, below any reasoning process or act of
|
|
consciousness, he had associated power with godhead. And never had the
|
|
white men seemed such marvelous gods as now, when he trod the slimy
|
|
pavement of San Francisco. The log cabins he had known were replaced
|
|
by towering buildings. The streets were crowded with perils- wagons,
|
|
carts, automobiles; great, straining horses pulling huge trucks; and
|
|
monstrous cable and electric cars hooting and clanging through the
|
|
midst, screeching their insistent menace after the manner of the
|
|
lynxes he had known in the northern woods.
|
|
|
|
All this was the manifestation of power. Through it all, behind it
|
|
all, was man, governing and controlling, expressing himself, as of
|
|
old, by his mastery over matter. It was colossal, stunning. White Fang
|
|
was awed. Fear sat upon him. As in his cubhood he had been made to
|
|
feel his smallness and puniness on the day he first came in from the
|
|
Wild to the village of Gray Beaver, so now, in his full-grown
|
|
stature and pride of strength, he was made to feel small and puny. And
|
|
there were so many gods! He was made dizzy by the swarming of them.
|
|
The thunder of the streets smote upon his ears. He was bewildered by
|
|
the tremendous and endless rush and movement of things. As never
|
|
before, he felt his dependence on the love-master, close at whose
|
|
heels he followed, no matter what happened never losing sight of him.
|
|
|
|
But White Fang was to have no more than a nightmare vision of the
|
|
city- an experience that was like a bad dream, unreal and terrible,
|
|
that haunted him for long after in his dreams. He was put into a
|
|
baggage-car by the master, chained in a corner in the midst of
|
|
heaped trunks and valises. Here a squat and brawny god held sway, with
|
|
much noise, hurling trunks and boxes about, dragging them in through
|
|
the door and tossing them into the piles, or flinging them out of
|
|
the door, smashing and crashing, to other gods who awaited them.
|
|
|
|
And here, in this inferno of luggage, was White Fang deserted by the
|
|
master. Or at least White Fang thought he was deserted, until he
|
|
smelled out the master's canvas clothes-bags alongside of him and
|
|
proceeded to mount guard over them.
|
|
|
|
''Bout time you come,' growled the god of the car, an hour later,
|
|
when Weedon Scott appeared at the door. 'That dog of yourn won't let
|
|
me lay a finger on your stuff.'
|
|
|
|
White Fang emerged from the car. He was astonished. The nightmare
|
|
city was gone. The car had been to him no more than a room in a house,
|
|
and when he had entered it the city had disappeared. The roar of it no
|
|
longer dinned upon his ears. Before him was smiling country, streaming
|
|
with sunshine, lazy with quietude. But he had little time to marvel at
|
|
the transformation. He accepted it as he accepted all the
|
|
unaccountable doings and manifestations of the gods. It was their way.
|
|
|
|
There was a carriage waiting. A man and a woman approached the
|
|
master. The woman's arms went out and clutched the master around the
|
|
neck- a hostile act! The next moment Weedon Scott had torn loose
|
|
from the embrace and closed with White Fang, who had become a
|
|
snarling, raging demon.
|
|
|
|
'It's all right, mother,' Scott was saying as he kept tight hold
|
|
of White Fang and placated him. 'He thought you were going to injure
|
|
me, and he wouldn't stand for it. It's all right. It's all right.
|
|
He'll learn soon enough.'
|
|
|
|
'And in the meantime I may be permitted to love my son when his
|
|
dog is not around,' she laughed, though she was pale and weak from the
|
|
fright.
|
|
|
|
She looked at White Fang, who snarled and bristled and glared
|
|
malevolently.
|
|
|
|
'He'll have to learn, and he shall, without postponement,' Scott
|
|
said.
|
|
|
|
He spoke softly to White Fang until he had quieted him, then his
|
|
voice became firm.
|
|
|
|
'Down, sir! Down with you!'
|
|
|
|
This had been one of the things taught him by the master, and
|
|
White Fang obeyed, though he lay down reluctantly and sullenly.
|
|
|
|
'Now, mother.'
|
|
|
|
Scott opened his arms to her, but kept his eyes on White Fang.
|
|
|
|
'Down!' he warned. 'Down!'
|
|
|
|
White Fang, bristling silently, half-crouching as he rose, sank back
|
|
and watched the hostile act repeated. But no harm came of it, nor of
|
|
the embrace from the strange man-god that followed. Then the
|
|
clothes-bags were taken into the carriage, the strange gods and the
|
|
love-master followed, and White Fang pursued, now running vigilantly
|
|
behind, now bristling up to the running horses and warning them that
|
|
he was there to see that no harm befell the god they dragged so
|
|
swiftly across the earth.
|
|
|
|
At the end of fifteen minutes, the carriage swung in through a stone
|
|
gateway and on between a double row of arched and interlacing walnut
|
|
trees. On either side stretched lawns, their broad sweep broken,
|
|
here and there, by great, sturdy-limbed oaks. In the near distance, in
|
|
contrast with the young green of the tended grass, sunburnt
|
|
hayfields showed tan and gold; while beyond were the tawny hills and
|
|
upland pastures. From the head of the lawn, on the first soft swell
|
|
from the valley-level, looked down the deep-porched, many-windowed
|
|
house.
|
|
|
|
Little opportunity was given White Fang to see all this. Hardly
|
|
had the carriage entered the grounds, when he was set upon by
|
|
sheep-dog, bright-eyed, sharp-muzzled, righteously indignant and
|
|
angry. It was between him and the master cutting him off. White Fang
|
|
snarled no warning, but his hair bristled as he made his silent and
|
|
deadly rush. This rush was never completed. He halted with awkward
|
|
abruptness, with stiff forelegs bracing himself against his
|
|
momentum, almost sitting down on his haunches, so desirous was he of
|
|
avoiding contact with the dog he was in the act of attacking. It was a
|
|
female, and the law of his kind thrust a barrier between. For him to
|
|
attack her would require nothing less than a violation of his
|
|
instinct.
|
|
|
|
But with the sheep-dog it was otherwise. Being a female, she
|
|
possessed no such instinct. On the other hand, being a sheep-dog,
|
|
her instinctive fear of the Wild, and especially of the wolf, was
|
|
unusually keen. White Fang was to her a wolf, the hereditary
|
|
marauder who had preyed upon her flocks from the time sheep were first
|
|
herded and guarded by some dim ancestor of hers. And so, as he
|
|
abandoned his rush at her and braced himself to avoid the contact, she
|
|
sprang upon him. He snarled involuntarily as he felt her teeth in
|
|
his shoulder, but beyond this made no offer to hurt her. He backed
|
|
away, stiff-legged with self-consciousness, and tried to go around
|
|
her. He dodged this way and that, and curved and turned, but to no
|
|
purpose. She remained always between him and the way he wanted to go.
|
|
|
|
'Here, Collie!' called the strange man in the carriage.
|
|
|
|
Weedon Scott laughed.
|
|
|
|
'Never mind, father. It is good discipline. White Fang will have
|
|
to learn many things, and it's just as well that he begins now.
|
|
He'll adjust himself all right.'
|
|
|
|
The carriage drove on, and still Collie blocked White Fang's way. He
|
|
tried to outrun her by leaving the drive and circling across the lawn;
|
|
but she ran on the inner and smaller circle, and was always there,
|
|
facing him with her two rows of gleaming teeth. Back he circled,
|
|
across the drive to the other lawn, and again she headed him off.
|
|
|
|
The carriage was bearing the master away. White Fang caught glimpses
|
|
of it disappearing amongst the trees. The situation was desperate.
|
|
He essayed another circle. She followed, running swiftly. And then,
|
|
suddenly, he turned upon her. It was his old fighting trick.
|
|
Shoulder to shoulder, he struck her squarely. Not only was she
|
|
overthrown. So fast had she been running that she rolled along, now on
|
|
her back, now on her side, as she struggled to stop, clawing gravel
|
|
with her feet and crying shrilly her hurt pride and indignation.
|
|
|
|
White Fang did not wait. The way was clear, and that was all he
|
|
had wanted. She took after him, never ceasing her outcry. It was the
|
|
straightaway now, and when it come to real running, White Fang could
|
|
teach her things. She ran frantically, hysterically, straining to
|
|
the utmost, advertising the effort she was making with every leap; and
|
|
all the time White Fang slid smoothly away from her, silently, without
|
|
effort, gliding like a ghost over the ground.
|
|
|
|
As he rounded the house to the porte-cochere, he came upon the
|
|
carriage. It had stopped, and the master was alighting. At this
|
|
moment, still running at top speed, White Fang became suddenly aware
|
|
of an attack from the side. It was a deer-hound rushing upon him.
|
|
White Fang tried to face it. But he was going too fast, and the
|
|
hound was too close. It struck him on the side; and such was his
|
|
forward momentum and the unexpectedness of it, White Fang was hurled
|
|
to the ground and rolled clear over. He came out of the tangle a
|
|
spectacle of malignancy, ears flattened back, lips writhing, nose
|
|
wrinkling, his teeth clipping together as the fangs barely missed
|
|
the hound's soft throat.
|
|
|
|
The master was running up, but was too far away; and it was Collie
|
|
that saved the hound's life. Before White Fang could spring in and
|
|
deliver the fatal stroke, and just as he was in the act of springing
|
|
in, Collie arrived. She had been outmaneuvered and outrun, to say
|
|
nothing of her having been unceremoniously tumbled in the gravel,
|
|
and her arrival was like that of a tornado- made up of offended
|
|
dignity, justifiable wrath, and instinctive hatred for this marauder
|
|
from the Wild. She struck White Fang at right angles in the midst of
|
|
his spring, and again he was knocked off his feet and rolled over.
|
|
|
|
The next moment the master arrived, and with one hand held White
|
|
Fang, while the father called off the dogs.
|
|
|
|
'I say, this is a pretty warm reception for a poor lone wolf from
|
|
the Arctic,' the master said, while White Fang calmed down under his
|
|
caressing hand. 'In all his life he's only been known once to go off
|
|
his feet, and here he's been rolled twice in thirty seconds.'
|
|
|
|
The carriage had driven away, and other strange gods had appeared
|
|
from out the house. Some of these stood respectfully at a distance;
|
|
but two of them, women, perpetrated the hostile act of clutching the
|
|
master around the neck. White Fang, however, was beginning to tolerate
|
|
this act. No harm seemed to come of it, while the noises the gods made
|
|
were certainly not threatening. These gods also made overtures to
|
|
White Fang, but he warned them off with a snarl, and the master did
|
|
likewise with word of mouth. At such times White Fang leaned in
|
|
close against the master's legs and received reassuring pats on the
|
|
head.
|
|
|
|
The hound, under the command, 'Dick! Lie down, sir!' had gone up the
|
|
steps and lain down to one side on the porch, still growling and
|
|
keeping a sullen watch on the intruder. Collie had been taken in
|
|
charge by one of the woman-gods, who held arms around her neck and
|
|
petted and caressed her; but Collie was very much perplexed and
|
|
worried, whining and restless, outraged by the permitted presence of
|
|
this wolf and confident that the gods were making a mistake.
|
|
|
|
All the gods started up the steps to enter the house. White Fang
|
|
followed closely at the master's heels. Dick, on the porch, growled,
|
|
and White Fang, on the steps, bristled and growled back.
|
|
|
|
'Take Collie inside and leave the two of them to fight it out,'
|
|
suggested Scott's father. 'After that they'll be friends.'
|
|
|
|
'Then White Fang, to show his friendship, will have to be chief
|
|
mourner at the funeral,' laughed the master.
|
|
|
|
The elder Scott looked incredulously, first at White Fang, then at
|
|
Dick, and finally at his son.
|
|
|
|
'You mean that...?'
|
|
|
|
Weedon nodded his head. 'I mean just that. You'd have a dead Dick
|
|
inside one minute- two minutes at the farthest.'
|
|
|
|
He turned to White Fang. 'Come on, you wolf. It's you that'll have
|
|
to come inside.'
|
|
|
|
White Fang walked stiff-legged up the steps and across the porch,
|
|
with tail rigidly erect, keeping his eyes on Dick to guard against a
|
|
flank attack, and at the same time prepared for whatever fierce
|
|
manifestation of the unknown that might pounce out upon him from the
|
|
interior of the house. But no thing of fear pounced out, and when he
|
|
had gained the inside he scouted carefully around, looking for it
|
|
and finding it not. Then he lay down with a contented grunt at the
|
|
master's feet, observing all that went on, ever ready to spring to his
|
|
feet and fight for life with the terrors he felt must lurk under the
|
|
trap-roof of the dwelling.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER THREE.
|
|
|
|
The God's Domain.
|
|
|
|
NOT ONLY WAS WHITE FANG adaptable by nature, but he had traveled
|
|
much, and knew the meaning and necessity of adjustment. Here, in
|
|
Sierra Vista, which was the name of Judge Scott's place, White Fang
|
|
quickly began to make himself at home. He had no further serious
|
|
trouble with the dogs. They knew more about the ways of the
|
|
Southland gods than he did, and in their eyes he had qualified when he
|
|
accompanied the gods inside the house. Wolf that he was, and
|
|
unprecedented as it was, the gods had sanctioned his presence, and
|
|
they, the dogs of the gods, could only recognize this sanction.
|
|
|
|
Dick, perforce, had to go through a few stiff formalities at
|
|
first, after which he calmly accepted White Fang as an addition to the
|
|
premises. Had Dick had his way, they would have been good friends; but
|
|
White Fang was averse to friendship. All he asked of other dogs was to
|
|
be let alone. His whole life he had kept aloof from his kind, and he
|
|
still desired to keep aloof. Dick's overtures bothered him, so he
|
|
snarled Dick away. In the north he had learned the lesson that he must
|
|
let the master's dogs alone, and he did not forget that lesson now.
|
|
But he insisted on his own privacy and self-seclusion, and so
|
|
thoroughly ignored Dick that that good-natured creature finally gave
|
|
him up and scarcely took as much interest in him as in the
|
|
hitching-post near the stable.
|
|
|
|
Not so with Collie. While she accepted him because it was the
|
|
mandate of the gods, that was no reason that she should leave him in
|
|
peace. Woven into her being was the memory of countless crimes he
|
|
and his had perpetrated against her ancestry. Not in a day nor a
|
|
generation were the ravaged sheepfolds to be forgotten. All this was a
|
|
spur to her, pricking her to retaliation. She could not fly in the
|
|
face of the gods who permitted him, but that did not prevent her
|
|
from making life miserable for him in petty ways. A feud, ages old,
|
|
was between them, and she, for one, would see to it that he was
|
|
reminded.
|
|
|
|
So Collie took advantage of her sex to pick upon White Fang and
|
|
maltreat him. His instinct would not permit him to attack her, while
|
|
her persistence would not permit him to ignore her. When she rushed at
|
|
him he turned his fur-protected shoulder to her sharp teeth and walked
|
|
away stiff-legged and stately. When she forced him too hard, he was
|
|
compelled to go about in a circle, his shoulder presented to her,
|
|
his head turned from her, and on his face and in his eyes a patient
|
|
and bored expression. Sometimes, however, a nip on his hind-quarters
|
|
hastened his retreat and made it anything but stately. But as a rule
|
|
he managed to maintain a dignity that was almost solemnity. He ignored
|
|
her existence whenever it was possible, and made it a point to keep
|
|
out of her way. When he saw or heard her coming, he got up and
|
|
walked off.
|
|
|
|
There was much in other matters for White Fang to learn. Life in the
|
|
Northland was simplicity itself when compared with the complicated
|
|
affairs of Sierra Vista. First of all, he had to learn the family of
|
|
the master. In a way he was prepared to do this. As Mit-sah and
|
|
Kloo-kooch had belonged to Gray Beaver, sharing his food, his fire,
|
|
and his blankets, so now, at Sierra Vista, belonged to the love-master
|
|
all the denizens of the house.
|
|
|
|
But in this matter there was a difference, and many differences.
|
|
Sierra Vista was a far vaster affair than the tepee of Gray Beaver.
|
|
There were many persons to be considered. There was Judge Scott, and
|
|
there was his wife. There were the master's two sisters, Beth and
|
|
Mary. There was his wife, Alice, and then there were his children,
|
|
Weedon and Maud, toddlers of four and six. There was no way for
|
|
anybody to tell him about all these people, and of blood-ties and
|
|
relationship he knew nothing whatever and never would be capable of
|
|
knowing. Yet he quickly worked it out that all of them belonged to the
|
|
master. Then, by observation, whenever opportunity offered, by study
|
|
of action, speech, and the very intonations of the voice, he slowly
|
|
learned the intimacy and the degree of favor they enjoyed with the
|
|
master. And by this ascertained standard, White Fang treated them
|
|
accordingly. What was of value to the master he valued; what was
|
|
dear to the master was to be cherished by White Fang and guarded
|
|
carefully.
|
|
|
|
Thus it was with the two children. All his life he had disliked
|
|
children. He hated and feared their hands. The lessons were not tender
|
|
that he had learned of their tyranny and cruelty in the days of the
|
|
Indian villages. When Weedon and Maud had first approached him, he
|
|
growled warningly and looked malignant. A cuff from the master and a
|
|
sharp word had then compelled him to permit their caresses, though
|
|
he growled and growled under their tiny hands, and in the growl
|
|
there was no crooning note. Later, he observed that the boy and girl
|
|
were of great value in the master's eyes. Then it was that no cuff nor
|
|
sharp word was necessary before they could pat him.
|
|
|
|
Yet White Fang was never effusively affectionate. He yielded to
|
|
the master's children with an ill but honest grace, and endured
|
|
their fooling as one would endure a painful operation. When he could
|
|
no longer endure, he would get up and stalk determinedly away from
|
|
them. But after a time, he grew even to like the children. Still he
|
|
was not demonstrative. He would not go up to them. On the other
|
|
hand, instead of walking away at sight of them, he waited for them
|
|
to come to him. And still later, it was noticed that a pleased light
|
|
came into his eyes when he saw them approaching, and that he looked
|
|
after them with an appearance of curious regret when they left him for
|
|
other amusements.
|
|
|
|
All this was a matter of development, and took time. Next in his
|
|
regard, after the children, was Judge Scott. There were two reasons,
|
|
possibly, for this. First, he was evidently a valuable possession of
|
|
the master's, and next, he was undemonstrative. White Fang liked to
|
|
lie at his feet on the wide porch when he read the newspaper, from
|
|
time to time favoring White Fang with a look or a word-
|
|
untroublesome tokens that he recognized White Fang's presence and
|
|
existence. But this was only when the master was not around. When
|
|
the master appeared, all other beings ceased to exist so far as
|
|
White Fang was concerned.
|
|
|
|
White Fang allowed all the members of the family to pet him and make
|
|
much of him; but he never gave to them what he gave to the master.
|
|
No caress of theirs could put the love-croon into his throat, and, try
|
|
as they would, they could never persuade him into snuggling against
|
|
them. This expression of abandon and surrender, of absolute trust,
|
|
he reserved for the master alone. In fact, he never regarded the
|
|
members of the family in any other light than possessions of the
|
|
love-master.
|
|
|
|
Also White Fang had early come to differentiate between the family
|
|
and the servants of the household. The latter were afraid of him,
|
|
while he merely refrained from attacking them. This because he
|
|
considered that they were likewise possessions of the master.
|
|
Between White Fang and them existed a neutrality and no more. They
|
|
cooked for the master and washed the dishes and did other things, just
|
|
as Matt had done up in the Klondike. They were, in short,
|
|
appurtenances of the household.
|
|
|
|
Outside the household there was even more for White Fang to learn.
|
|
The master's domain was wide and complex, yet it had its metes and
|
|
bounds.
|
|
|
|
The land itself ceased at the country road. Outside was the common
|
|
domain of all gods- the roads and streets. Then inside other fences
|
|
were the particular domains of other dogs. A myriad laws governed
|
|
all these things and determined conduct; yet he did not know the
|
|
speech of the gods, nor was there any way for him to learn save by
|
|
experience. He obeyed his natural impulses until they ran him
|
|
counter to some law. When this had been done a few times, he learned
|
|
the law and after that observed it.
|
|
|
|
But most potent in his education were the cuff of the master's hand,
|
|
the censure of the master's voice. Because of White Fang's very
|
|
great love, a cuff from the master hurt him far more than any
|
|
beating Gray Beaver or Beauty Smith had ever given him. They had
|
|
hurt only the flesh of him; beneath the flesh the spirit had still
|
|
raged, splendid and invincible. But with the master the cuff was
|
|
always too light to hurt the flesh. Yet it went deeper. It was an
|
|
expression of the master's disapproval, and White Fang's spirit wilted
|
|
under it.
|
|
|
|
In point of fact, the cuff was rarely administered. The master's
|
|
voice was sufficient. By it White Fang knew whether he did right or
|
|
not. By it he trimmed his conduct and adjusted his actions. It was the
|
|
compass by which he steered and learned to chart the manners of a
|
|
new land and life.
|
|
|
|
In the Northland, the only domesticated animal was the dog. All
|
|
other animals lived in the Wild, and were, when not too formidable,
|
|
lawful spoil for any dogs. All his days White Fang had foraged among
|
|
the live things for food. It did not enter his head that in the
|
|
Southland it was otherwise. But this he was to learn early in his
|
|
residence in Santa Clara Valley. Sauntering around the corner of the
|
|
house in the early morning, he came upon a chicken that had escaped
|
|
from the chicken-yard. White Fang's natural impulse was to eat it. A
|
|
couple of bounds, a flash of teeth and a frightened squawk, and he had
|
|
scooped in the adventurous fowl. It was farm-bred and fat and
|
|
tender; and White Fang licked his chops and decided that such fare was
|
|
good.
|
|
|
|
Later in the day, he chanced upon another stray chicken near the
|
|
stables. One of the grooms ran to the rescue. He did not know White
|
|
Fang's breed, so for weapon he took a light buggy-whip. At the first
|
|
cut of the whip, White Fang left the chicken for the man. A club might
|
|
have stopped White Fang, but not a whip. Silently, without
|
|
flinching, he took a second cut in his forward rush, and as he
|
|
leaped for the throat the groom cried out, 'My God!' and staggered
|
|
backward. He dropped the whip and shielded his throat with his arms.
|
|
In consequence, his forearm was ripped open to the bone.
|
|
|
|
The man was badly frightened. It was not so much White Fang's
|
|
ferocity as it was his silence that unnerved the groom. Still
|
|
protecting his throat and face with his torn and bleeding arm, he
|
|
tried to retreat to the barn. And it would have gone hard with him had
|
|
not Collie appeared on the scene. As she had saved Dick's life, she
|
|
now saved the groom's. She rushed upon White Fang in frenzied wrath.
|
|
She had been right. She had known better than the blundering gods. All
|
|
her suspicions were justified. Here was the ancient marauder up to his
|
|
old tricks again.
|
|
|
|
The groom escaped into the stables, and White Fang backed away
|
|
before Collie's wicked teeth, or presented his shoulder to them and
|
|
circled round and round. But Collie did not give over, as was her
|
|
wont, after a decent interval of chastisement. On the contrary, she
|
|
grew more excited and angry every moment, until, in the end, White
|
|
Fang flung dignity to the winds and frankly fled away from her
|
|
across the fields.
|
|
|
|
'He'll learn to leave chickens alone,' the master said. 'But I can't
|
|
give him the lesson until I catch him in the act.'
|
|
|
|
Two nights later came the act, but on a more generous scale than the
|
|
master had anticipated. White Fang had observed closely the
|
|
chicken-yards and the habits of the chickens. In the night-time, after
|
|
they had gone to roost, he climbed to the top of a pile of newly
|
|
hauled lumber. From there he gained the roof of a chicken-house,
|
|
passed over the ridgepole and dropped to the ground inside. A moment
|
|
later he was inside the house, and the slaughter began.
|
|
|
|
In the morning, when the master came out on the porch, fifty white
|
|
Leghorn hens, laid out in a row by the groom, greeted his eyes. He
|
|
whistled to himself, softly, first with surprise, and then, at the
|
|
end, with admiration. His eyes were likewise greeted by White Fang,
|
|
but about the latter there were no signs of shame nor guilt. He
|
|
carried himself with pride, as though, forsooth, he had achieved a
|
|
deed praiseworthy and meritorious. There was about him no
|
|
consciousness of sin. The master's lips tightened as he faced the
|
|
disagreeable task. Then he talked harshly to the unwitting culprit,
|
|
and in his voice there was nothing but godlike wrath. Also, he held
|
|
White Fang's nose down to the slain hens, and at the same time
|
|
cuffed him soundly.
|
|
|
|
White Fang never raided a chicken-roost again. It was against the
|
|
law, and he had learned it. Then the master took him into the
|
|
chicken-yards. White Fang's natural impulse, when he saw the live food
|
|
fluttering about him and under his very nose, was to spring upon it.
|
|
He obeyed the impulse, but was checked by the master's voice. They
|
|
continued in the yards for half an hour. Time and again the impulse
|
|
surged over White Fang, and each time, as he yielded to it, he was
|
|
checked by the master's voice. Thus it was he learned the law, and ere
|
|
he left the domain of the chickens, he had learned to ignore their
|
|
existence.
|
|
|
|
'You can never cure a chicken-killer.' Judge Scott shook his head
|
|
sadly at the luncheon table, when his son narrated the lesson he had
|
|
given White Fang. 'Once they've got the habit and the taste of
|
|
blood...' Again he shook his head sadly.
|
|
|
|
But Weedon Scott did not agree with his father.
|
|
|
|
'I'll tell you what I'll do,' he challenged finally. 'I'll lock
|
|
White Fang in with the chickens all afternoon.'
|
|
|
|
'But think of the chickens,' objected the Judge.
|
|
|
|
'And furthermore,' the son went on, 'for every chicken he kills,
|
|
I'll pay you one dollar gold coin of the realm.'
|
|
|
|
'But you should penalize father, too,' interposed Beth.
|
|
|
|
Her sister seconded her, and a chorus of approval arose from
|
|
around the table. Judge Scott nodded his head in agreement.
|
|
|
|
'All right.' Weedon Scott pondered for a moment. 'And if, at the end
|
|
of the afternoon, White Fang hasn't harmed a chicken, for every ten
|
|
minutes of the time he has spent in the yard, you will have to say
|
|
to him, gravely and with deliberation, just as if you were sitting
|
|
on the bench and solemnly passing judgment, "White Fang, you are
|
|
smarter than I thought."'
|
|
|
|
From hidden points of vantage the family watched the performance.
|
|
But it was a fizzle. Locked in the yard and there deserted by the
|
|
master, White Fang lay down and went to sleep. Once he got up and
|
|
walked over to the trough for a drink of water. The chickens he calmly
|
|
ignored. So far as he was concerned they did not exist. At four
|
|
o'clock he executed a running jump, gained the roof of the chicken
|
|
house and leaped to the ground outside, whence he sauntered gravely to
|
|
the house. He had learned the law. And on the porch, before the
|
|
delighted family, Judge Scott, face to face with White Fang, said
|
|
slowly and solemnly sixteen times, 'White Fang, you are smarter than I
|
|
thought.'
|
|
|
|
But it was the multiplicity of laws that befuddled White Fang and
|
|
often brought him into disgrace. He had to learn that he must not
|
|
touch the chickens that belonged to other gods. Then there were
|
|
cats, and rabbits, and turkeys; all these he must let alone. In
|
|
fact, when he had but partly learned the law, his impression was
|
|
that he must leave all live things alone. Out in the back-pasture, a
|
|
quail could flutter up under his nose unharmed. All tense and
|
|
trembling with eagerness and desire, he mastered his instinct and
|
|
stood still. He was obeying the will of the gods.
|
|
|
|
And then, one day, again out in the back-pasture, he saw Dick
|
|
start a jackrabbit and run it. The master himself was looking on and
|
|
did not interfere. Nay, he encouraged White Fang to join in the chase.
|
|
And thus he learned that there was no taboo on jackrabbits. In the end
|
|
he worked out the complete law. Between him and all domestic animals
|
|
there must be no hostilities. If not amity, at least neutrality must
|
|
obtain. But the other animals- the squirrels, and quail, and
|
|
cottontails- were creatures of the Wild who had never yielded
|
|
allegiance to man. They were the lawful prey of any dog. It was only
|
|
the tame that the gods protected, and between the tame deadly strife
|
|
was not permitted. The gods held the power of life and death over
|
|
their subjects, and the gods were jealous of their power.
|
|
|
|
Life was complex in the Santa Clara Valley after the simplicities of
|
|
the Northland. And the chief thing demanded by these intricacies of
|
|
civilization was control, restraint- a poise of self that was as
|
|
delicate as the fluttering of gossamer wings and at the same time as
|
|
rigid as steel. Life had a thousand faces, and White Fang found he
|
|
must meet them all. Thus, when he went to town, in to San Jose running
|
|
behind the carriage or loafing about the streets when the carriage
|
|
stopped, life flowed past him, deep and wide and varied, continually
|
|
impinging upon his senses, demanding of him instant and endless
|
|
adjustments and correspondences, and compelling him, almost always, to
|
|
suppress his natural impulses.
|
|
|
|
There were butcher-shops where meat hung within reach. This meat
|
|
he must not touch. There were cats at the houses the master visited
|
|
that must be let alone. And there were dogs everywhere that snarled at
|
|
him and that he must not attack. And then, on the crowded sidewalks,
|
|
there were persons innumerable whose attention he attracted. They
|
|
would stop and look at him, point him out to one another, examine him,
|
|
talk to him, and, worst of all, pat him. And these perilous contacts
|
|
from all these strange hands he must endure. Yet this endurance he
|
|
achieved. Furthermore he got over being awkward and self-conscious. In
|
|
a lofty way he received the attentions of the multitudes of strange
|
|
gods. With condescension he accepted their condescension. On the other
|
|
hand, there was something about him that prevented great
|
|
familiarity. They patted him on the head and passed on, contented
|
|
and pleased with their own daring.
|
|
|
|
But it was not all easy for White Fang. Running behind the
|
|
carriage in the outskirts of San Jose, he encountered certain small
|
|
boys who made a practice of flinging stones at him. Yet he knew that
|
|
it was not permitted him to pursue and drag them down. Here he was
|
|
compelled to violate his instinct of self-preservation, and violate it
|
|
he did, for he was becoming tame and qualifying himself for
|
|
civilization.
|
|
|
|
Nevertheless, White Fang was not quite satisfied with the
|
|
arrangement. He had no abstract ideas about justice and fair play. But
|
|
there is a certain sense of equity that resides in life, and it was
|
|
this sense in him that resented the unfairness of his being
|
|
permitted no defense against the stone-throwers. He forgot that in the
|
|
covenant entered into between him and the gods they were pledged to
|
|
care for him and defend him. But one day the master sprang from the
|
|
carriage, whip in hand, and gave the stone-throwers a thrashing. After
|
|
that they threw stones no more, and White Fang understood and was
|
|
satisfied.
|
|
|
|
One other experience of similar nature was his. On the way to
|
|
town, hanging around the saloon at the crossroads, were three dogs
|
|
that made a practice of rushing out upon him when he went by.
|
|
Knowing his deadly method of fighting, the master had never ceased
|
|
impressing upon White Fang the law that he must not fight. As a
|
|
result, having learned the lesson well, White Fang was hard put
|
|
whenever he passed the crossroads saloon. After the first rush, each
|
|
time, his snarl kept the three dogs at a distance, but they trailed
|
|
along behind, yelping and bickering and insulting him. This endured
|
|
for some time. The men at the saloon even urged the dogs on to
|
|
attack White Fang. One day they openly sicked the dogs on him. The
|
|
master stopped the carriage.
|
|
|
|
'Go to it,' he said to White Fang.
|
|
|
|
But White Fang could not believe. He looked at the master, and he
|
|
looked at the dogs. Then he looked back eagerly and questioningly at
|
|
the master.
|
|
|
|
The master nodded his head. 'Go to them, old fellow. Eat them up.'
|
|
|
|
White Fang no longer hesitated. He turned and leaped silently
|
|
among his enemies. All three faced him. There was a great snarling and
|
|
growling, a clashing of teeth and a flurry of bodies. The dust of
|
|
the road arose in a cloud and screened the battle. But at the end of
|
|
several minutes two dogs were struggling in the dirt and the third was
|
|
in full flight. He leaped a ditch, went through a rail fence, and fled
|
|
across a field. White Fang followed, sliding over the ground in wolf
|
|
fashion and with wolf speed, swiftly and without noise, and in the
|
|
center of the field he dragged down and slew the dog.
|
|
|
|
With this triple killing his main trouble with dogs ceased. The word
|
|
went up and down the valley, and men saw to it that their dogs did not
|
|
molest the Fighting Wolf.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER FOUR.
|
|
|
|
The Call of Kind.
|
|
|
|
THE MONTHS CAME AND went. There was plenty of food and no work in
|
|
the Southland, and White Fang lived fat and prosperous and happy.
|
|
Not alone was he in the geographical Southland, for he was in the
|
|
Southland of Life. Human kindness was like a sun shining upon him, and
|
|
he flourished like a flower planted in good soil.
|
|
|
|
And yet he remained somehow different from other dogs. He knew the
|
|
law even better than did the dogs that had known no other life, and he
|
|
observed the law more punctiliously; but still there was about him a
|
|
suggestion of lurking ferocity, as though the Wild still lingered in
|
|
him and the wolf in him merely slept.
|
|
|
|
He never chummed with other dogs. Lonely he had lived, so far as his
|
|
kind was concerned, and lonely he would continue to live. In his
|
|
puppyhood, under the persecution of Lip-lip and the puppy-pack, and in
|
|
his fighting days with Beauty Smith, he had acquired a fixed
|
|
aversion for dogs. The natural course of his life had been diverted,
|
|
and, recoiling from his kind, he had clung to the human.
|
|
|
|
Besides, all Southland dogs looked upon him with suspicion. He
|
|
aroused in them their instinctive fear of the Wild, and they greeted
|
|
him always with snarl and growl and belligerent hatred. He, on the
|
|
other hand, learned that it was not necessary to use his teeth upon
|
|
them. His naked fangs and writhing lips were uniformly efficacious,
|
|
rarely failing to send a bellowing on-rushing dog back on its
|
|
haunches.
|
|
|
|
But there was one trial in White Fang's life- Collie. She never gave
|
|
him a moment's peace. She was not so amenable to the law as he. She
|
|
defied all efforts of the master to make her become friends with White
|
|
Fang. Ever in his ears was sounding her sharp and nervous snarl. She
|
|
had never forgiven him the chicken-killing episode, and persistently
|
|
held to the belief that his intentions were bad. She found him
|
|
guilty before the act, and treated him accordingly. She became a
|
|
pest to him, like a policeman following him around the stable and
|
|
the grounds, and, if he even so much as glanced curiously at a
|
|
pigeon or chicken, bursting into an outcry of indignation and wrath.
|
|
His favorite way of ignoring her was to lie down, with his head on his
|
|
forepaws, and pretend sleep. This always dumbfounded and silenced her.
|
|
|
|
With the exception of Collie, all things went well with White
|
|
Fang. He had learned control and poise, and he knew the law. He
|
|
achieved a staidness, and calmness, and philosophic tolerance. He no
|
|
longer lived in a hostile environment. Danger and hurt and death did
|
|
not lurk everywhere about him. In time, the unknown, as a thing of
|
|
terror and menace ever impending, faded away. Life was soft and
|
|
easy. It flowed along smoothly, and neither fear nor foe lurked by the
|
|
way.
|
|
|
|
He missed the snow without being aware of it. 'An unduly long
|
|
summer' would have been his thought had he thought about it; as it
|
|
was, he merely missed the snow in a vague, subconscious way. In the
|
|
same fashion, especially in the heat of summer when he suffered from
|
|
the sun, he experienced faint longings for the Northland. Their only
|
|
effect upon him, however, was to make him uneasy and restless
|
|
without his knowing what was the matter.
|
|
|
|
White Fang had never been demonstrative. Beyond his snuggling and
|
|
the throwing of a crooning note into his love-growl, he had no way
|
|
of expressing his love. Yet it was given him to discover a third
|
|
way. He had always been susceptible to the laughter of the gods.
|
|
Laughter had affected him with madness, made him frantic with rage.
|
|
But he did not have it in him to be angry with the love-master, and
|
|
when that god elected to laugh at him in a good-natured, bantering
|
|
way, he was nonplussed. He could feel the pricking and stinging of the
|
|
old anger as it strove to rise up in him, but it strove against
|
|
love. He could not be angry; yet he had to do something. At first he
|
|
was dignified, and the master laughed the harder. Then he tried to
|
|
be more dignified, and the master laughed harder than before. In the
|
|
end, the master laughed him out of his dignity. His jaws slightly
|
|
parted, his lips lifted a little, a quizzical expression that was more
|
|
love than humor came into his eyes. He had learned to laugh.
|
|
|
|
Likewise he learned to romp with the master, to be tumbled down
|
|
and rolled over, and be the victim of innumerable rough tricks. In
|
|
return he feigned anger, bristling and growling ferociously, and
|
|
clipping his teeth together in snaps that had all the seeming of
|
|
deadly intention. But he never forgot himself. Those snaps were always
|
|
delivered on the empty air. At the end of such a romp, when blow and
|
|
cuff and snap and snarl were fast and furious, they would break off
|
|
suddenly and stand several feet apart, glaring at each other. And
|
|
then, just as suddenly, like the sun rising on a stormy sea, they
|
|
would begin to laugh. This would always culminate with the master's
|
|
arms going around White Fang's neck and shoulders while the latter
|
|
crooned and growled his love-song.
|
|
|
|
But nobody else ever romped with White Fang. He did not permit it.
|
|
He stood on his dignity, and when they attempted it, his warning snarl
|
|
and bristling mane were anything but playful. That he allowed the
|
|
master these liberties was no reason that he should be a common dog,
|
|
loving here and loving there, everybody's property for a romp and good
|
|
time. He loved with single heart and refused to cheapen himself or his
|
|
love.
|
|
|
|
The master went out on horseback a great deal, and to accompany
|
|
him was one of White Fang's chief duties in life. In the Northland
|
|
he had evidenced his fealty by toiling in the harness; but there
|
|
were no sleds in the Southland, nor did dogs pack burdens on their
|
|
backs. So he rendered fealty in the new way, by running with the
|
|
master's horse. The longest day never played White Fang out. His was
|
|
the gait of the wolf, smooth, tireless, and effortless, and at the end
|
|
of fifty miles he would come in jauntily ahead of the horse.
|
|
|
|
It was in connection with the riding, that White Fang achieved one
|
|
other mode of expression- remarkable in that he did it but twice in
|
|
all his life. The first time occurred when the master was trying to
|
|
teach a spirited thoroughbred the method of opening and closing
|
|
gates without the rider's dismounting. Time and again and many times
|
|
he ranged the horse up to the gate in the effort to close it, and each
|
|
time the horse became frightened and backed and plunged away. It
|
|
grew more nervous and excited every moment. When it reared, the master
|
|
put the spurs to it and made it drop its forelegs back to earth,
|
|
whereupon it would begin kicking with its hind-legs. White Fang
|
|
watched the performance with increasing anxiety until he could contain
|
|
himself no longer, when he sprang in front of the horse and barked
|
|
savagely and warningly.
|
|
|
|
Though he often tried to bark thereafter, and the master
|
|
encouraged him, he succeeded only once, and then it was not in the
|
|
master's presence. A scamper across the pasture, a jackrabbit rising
|
|
suddenly under the horse's feet, a violent sheer, a stumble, a fall to
|
|
earth, and a broken leg for the master were the cause of it. White
|
|
Fang sprang in a rage at the throat of the offending horse, but was
|
|
checked by the master's voice.
|
|
|
|
'Home! Go home!' the master commanded, when he had ascertained his
|
|
injury.
|
|
|
|
White Fang was disinclined to desert him. The master thought of
|
|
writing a note, but searched his pockets vainly for pencil and
|
|
paper. Again he commanded White Fang to go home.
|
|
|
|
The latter regarded him wistfully, started away, then returned and
|
|
whined softly. The master talked to him gently but seriously, and he
|
|
cocked his ears and listened with painful intentness.
|
|
|
|
'That's all right, old fellow, you just run along home,' ran the
|
|
talk. 'Go on home and tell them what's happened to me. Home with
|
|
you, you wolf. Get along home!'
|
|
|
|
White Fang knew the meaning of 'home,' and though he did not
|
|
understand the remainder of the master's language, he knew it was
|
|
his will that he should go home. He turned and trotted reluctantly
|
|
away. Then he stopped, undecided, and looked back over his shoulder.
|
|
|
|
'Go home!' came the sharp command, and this time he obeyed.
|
|
|
|
The family was on the porch, taking the cool of the afternoon,
|
|
when White Fang arrived. He came in among them, panting, covered
|
|
with dust.
|
|
|
|
'Weedon's back,' Weedon's mother announced.
|
|
|
|
The children welcomed White Fang with glad cries and ran to meet
|
|
him. He avoided them and passed down the porch, but they cornered
|
|
him against a rocking-chair and the railing. He growled and tried to
|
|
push by them. Their mother looked apprehensively in their direction.
|
|
|
|
'I confess, he makes me nervous around the children,' she said. 'I
|
|
have a dread that he will turn upon them unexpectedly some day.'
|
|
|
|
Growling savagely, White Fang sprang out of the corner,
|
|
overturning the boy and the girl. The mother called them to her and
|
|
comforted them, telling them not to bother White Fang.
|
|
|
|
'A wolf is a wolf,' commented Judge Scott. 'There is no trusting
|
|
one.'
|
|
|
|
'But he is not all wolf,' interposed Beth, standing for her
|
|
brother in his absence.
|
|
|
|
'You have only Weedon's opinion for that,' rejoined the Judge. 'He
|
|
merely surmises that there is some strain of dog in White Fang; but as
|
|
he will tell you himself, he knows nothing about it. As for his
|
|
appearance-'
|
|
|
|
He did not finish the sentence. White Fang stood before him,
|
|
growling fiercely.
|
|
|
|
'Go away! Lie down, sir!' Judge Scott commanded.
|
|
|
|
White Fang turned to the love-master's wife. She screamed with
|
|
fright as he seized her dress in his teeth and dragged on it till
|
|
the frail fabric tore away. By this time he had become the center of
|
|
interest. He had ceased from his growling and stood, head up,
|
|
looking into their faces. His throat worked spasmodically, but made no
|
|
sound, while he struggled with all his body, convulsed with the effort
|
|
to rid himself of the incommunicable something that strained for
|
|
utterance.
|
|
|
|
'I hope he is not going mad,' said Weedon's mother. 'I told Weedon
|
|
that I was afraid the warm climate would not agree with an Arctic
|
|
animal.'
|
|
|
|
'He's trying to speak, I do believe,' Beth announced.
|
|
|
|
At this moment speech came to White Fang, rushing up in a great
|
|
burst of barking.
|
|
|
|
'Something has happened to Weedon,' his wife said decisively.
|
|
|
|
They were all on their feet, now, and White Fang ran down the steps,
|
|
looking back for them to follow. For the second and last time in his
|
|
life he had barked and made himself understood.
|
|
|
|
After this event he found a warmer place in the hearts of Sierra
|
|
Vista people, and even the groom whose arm he had slashed admitted
|
|
that he was a wise dog even if he was a wolf. Judge Scott still held
|
|
to the same opinion, and proved it to everybody's dissatisfaction by
|
|
measurements and descriptions taken from the encyclopedia and
|
|
various works on natural history.
|
|
|
|
The days came and went, streaming their unbroken sunshine over the
|
|
Santa Clara Valley. But as they grew shorter and White Fang's second
|
|
winter in the Southland came on, he made a strange discovery. Collie's
|
|
teeth were no longer sharp. There was a playfulness about her nips and
|
|
a gentleness that prevented them from really hurting him. He forgot
|
|
that she had made life a burden to him, and when she disported herself
|
|
around him he responded solemnly, striving to be playful and
|
|
becoming no more than ridiculous.
|
|
|
|
One day she led him off on a long chase through the back-pasture and
|
|
into the woods. It was the afternoon that the master was to ride,
|
|
and White Fang knew it. The horse stood saddled and waiting at the
|
|
door. White Fang hesitated. But there was that in him deeper than
|
|
all the law he had learned, than the customs that had moulded him,
|
|
than his love for the master, than the very will to live of himself;
|
|
and when, in the moment of his indecision, Collie nipped him and
|
|
scampered off, he turned and followed after. The master rode alone
|
|
that day; and in the woods, side by side, White Fang ran with
|
|
Collie, as his mother, Kiche, and old One Eye had run long years
|
|
before in the silent Northland forest.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER FIVE.
|
|
|
|
The Sleeping Wolf.
|
|
|
|
IT WAS ABOUT THIS TIME that the newspapers were full of the daring
|
|
escape of a convict from San Quentin prison. He was a ferocious man.
|
|
He had been ill-made in the making. He had not been born right, and he
|
|
had not been helped any by the moulding he had received at the hands
|
|
of society. The hands of society are harsh, and this man was a
|
|
striking sample of its handiwork. He was a beast- a human beast, it is
|
|
true, but nevertheless so terrible a beast that he can best be
|
|
characterized as carnivorous.
|
|
|
|
In San Quentin prison he had proved incorrigible. Punishment
|
|
failed to break his spirit. He could die dumb-mad and fighting to
|
|
the last, but he could not live and be beaten. The more fiercely he
|
|
fought, the more harshly society handled him, and the only effect of
|
|
harshness was to make him fiercer. Strait-jackets, starvation, and
|
|
beatings and clubbings were the wrong treatment for Jim Hall; but it
|
|
was the treatment he received. It was the treatment he had received
|
|
from the time he was a little pulpy boy in a San Francisco slum-
|
|
soft clay in the hands of society and ready to be formed into
|
|
something.
|
|
|
|
It was during Jim Hall's third term in prison that he encountered
|
|
a guard that was almost as great a beast as he. The guard treated
|
|
him unfairly, lied about him to the warden, lost him his credits,
|
|
persecuted him. The difference between them was that the guard carried
|
|
a bunch of keys and a revolver. Jim Hall had only his naked hands
|
|
and his teeth. But he sprang upon the guard one day and used his teeth
|
|
on the other's throat just like any jungle animal.
|
|
|
|
After this, Jim Hall went to live in the incorrigible cell. He lived
|
|
there three years. The cell was of iron, the floor, the walls, the
|
|
roof. He never left his cell. He never saw the sky nor the sunshine.
|
|
Day was a twilight and night was a black silence. He was in an iron
|
|
tomb, buried alive. He saw no human thing. When his food was shoved in
|
|
to him, he growled like a wild animal. He hated all things. For days
|
|
and nights he bellowed his rage at the universe. For weeks and
|
|
months he never made a sound, in the black silence eating his very
|
|
soul. He was a man and a monstrosity, as fearful a thing of fear as
|
|
ever gibbered in the visions of a maddened brain.
|
|
|
|
And then, one night, he escaped. The warden said it was
|
|
impossible, but nevertheless the cell was empty, and half in half
|
|
out of it lay the body of a dead guard. Two other dead guards marked
|
|
his trail through the prison to the outer walls, and he had killed
|
|
with his hands to avoid noise.
|
|
|
|
He was armed with the weapons of the slain guards- a live arsenal
|
|
that fled through the hills pursued by the organized might of society.
|
|
A heavy price of gold was upon his head. Avaricious farmers hunted him
|
|
with shotguns. His blood might pay off a mortgage or send a son to
|
|
college. Public-spirited citizens took down their rifles and went
|
|
out after him. A pack of bloodhounds followed the way of his
|
|
bleeding feet. And the sleuth-hounds of the laws, the paid fighting
|
|
animals of society, with telephone, and telegraph, and special
|
|
train, clung to his trail night and day.
|
|
|
|
Sometimes they came upon him, and men faced him like heroes, or
|
|
stampeded through barb-wire fences to the delight of the
|
|
commonwealth reading the account at the breakfast table. It was
|
|
after such encounters that the dead and wounded were carted back to
|
|
the towns, and their places filled by men eager for the manhunt.
|
|
|
|
And then Jim Hall disappeared. The bloodhounds vainly quested on the
|
|
lost trail. Inoffensive ranchers in remote valleys were held up by
|
|
armed men and compelled to identify themselves; while the remains of
|
|
Jim Hall were discovered on a dozen mountainsides by greedy
|
|
claimants for blood-money.
|
|
|
|
In the meantime the newspapers were read at Sierra Vista, not so
|
|
much with interest as with anxiety. The women were afraid, Judge Scott
|
|
pooh-poohed and laughed, but not with reason, for it was in his last
|
|
days on the bench that Jim Hall had stood before him and received
|
|
sentence. And in open courtroom, before all men, Jim Hall had
|
|
proclaimed that the day would come when he would wreak vengeance on
|
|
the Judge that sentenced him.
|
|
|
|
For once, Jim Hall was right. He was innocent of the crime for which
|
|
he was sentenced. It was a case, in the parlance of thieves and
|
|
police, of 'railroading'. Jim Hall was being 'railroaded' to prison
|
|
for a crime he had not committed. Because of the two prior convictions
|
|
against him, Judge Scott imposed upon him a sentence of fifty years.
|
|
|
|
Judge Scott did not know all things, and he did not know that he was
|
|
party to a police conspiracy, that the evidence was hatched and
|
|
perjured, that Jim Hall was guiltless of the crime charged. And Jim
|
|
Hall, on the other hand, did not know that Judge Scott was merely
|
|
ignorant. Jim Hall believed that the Judge knew all about it and was
|
|
hand in glove with the police in the perpetration of the monstrous
|
|
injustice. So it was, when the doom of fifty years of living death was
|
|
uttered by Judge Scott, that Jim Hall, hating all things in the
|
|
society that misused him, rose up and raged in the courtroom until
|
|
dragged down by half a dozen of his blue-coated enemies. To him, Judge
|
|
Scott was the keystone in the arch of injustice, and upon Judge
|
|
Scott he emptied the vials of his wrath and hurled the threats of
|
|
his revenge yet to come. Then Jim Hall went to his living death... and
|
|
escaped.
|
|
|
|
Of all this White Fang knew nothing. But between him and Alice,
|
|
the master's wife, there existed a secret. Each night, after Sierra
|
|
Vista had gone to bed, she arose and let in White Fang to sleep in the
|
|
big hall. Now White Fang was not a house-dog, nor was he permitted
|
|
to sleep in the house; so each morning, early, she slipped down and
|
|
let him out before the family was awake.
|
|
|
|
On one such night, while all the house slept, White Fang awoke and
|
|
lay very quietly. And very quietly he smelled the air and read the
|
|
message it bore of a strange god's presence. And to his ears came
|
|
sounds of the strange god's movements. White Fang burst into no
|
|
furious outcry. It was not his way. The strange god walked softly, but
|
|
more softly walked White Fang, for he had no clothes to rub against
|
|
the flesh of his body. He followed silently. In the Wild he had hunted
|
|
live meat that was infinitely timid, and he knew the advantage of
|
|
surprise.
|
|
|
|
The strange god paused at the foot of the great staircase and
|
|
listened, and White Fang was as dead, so without movement was he as he
|
|
watched and waited. Up that staircase the way led to the love-master
|
|
and to the love-master's dearest possessions. White Fang bristled, but
|
|
waited. The strange god's foot lifted. He was beginning the ascent.
|
|
|
|
Then it was that White Fang struck. He gave no warning, with no
|
|
snarl anticipated his own action. Into the air he lifted his body in
|
|
the spring that landed him on the strange god's back. White Fang clung
|
|
with his forepaws to the man's shoulders, at the same time burying his
|
|
fangs into the back of the man's neck. He clung on for a moment,
|
|
long enough to drag the god over backward. Together they crashed to
|
|
the floor. White Fang leaped clear, and, as the man struggled to rise,
|
|
was in again with the slashing fangs.
|
|
|
|
Sierra Vista awoke in alarm. The noise from downstairs was as that
|
|
of a score of battling fiends. There were revolver shots. A man's
|
|
voice screamed once in horror and anguish. There was a great
|
|
snarling and growling, and over all arose a smashing and crashing of
|
|
furniture and glass.
|
|
|
|
But almost as quickly as it had arisen, the commotion died away. The
|
|
struggle had not lasted more than three minutes. The frightened
|
|
household clustered at the top of the stairway. From below, as from
|
|
out an abyss of blackness, came up a gurgling sound, as of air
|
|
bubbling through water. Sometimes this gurgle became sibilant,
|
|
almost a whistle. But this, too, quickly died down and ceased. Then
|
|
naught came up out of the blackness save a heavy panting of some
|
|
creature struggling sorely for air.
|
|
|
|
Weedon Scott pressed a button, and the staircase and downstairs hall
|
|
were flooded with light. Then he and Judge Scott, revolvers in hand,
|
|
cautiously descended. There was no need for this caution. White Fang
|
|
had done his work. In the midst of the wreckage of overthrown and
|
|
smashed furniture, partly on his side, his face hidden by an arm,
|
|
lay a man. Weedon Scott bent over, removed the arm, and turned the
|
|
man's face upward. A gaping throat explained the manner of his death.
|
|
|
|
'Jim Hall,' said Judge Scott, and father and son looked
|
|
significantly at each other.
|
|
|
|
Then they turned to White Fang. He, too, was lying on his side.
|
|
His eyes were closed, but the lids slightly lifted in an effort to
|
|
look at them as they bent over him, and the tail was perceptibly
|
|
agitated in a vain effort to wag. Weedon Scott patted him, and his
|
|
throat rumbled an acknowledging growl. But it was a weak growl at
|
|
best, and it quickly ceased. His eyelids dropped and went shut, and
|
|
his whole body seemed to relax and flatten out upon the floor.
|
|
|
|
'He's all in, poor devil,' muttered the master.
|
|
|
|
'We'll see about that,' asserted the Judge, as he started for the
|
|
telephone.
|
|
|
|
'Frankly, he has one chance in a thousand,' announced the surgeon,
|
|
after he had worked an hour and a half on White Fang.
|
|
|
|
Dawn was breaking through the windows and dimming the electric
|
|
lights. With the exception of the children, the whole family was
|
|
gathered about the surgeon to hear his verdict.
|
|
|
|
'One broken hind-leg,' he went on. 'Three broken ribs, one at
|
|
least of which has pierced the lungs. He has lost nearly all the blood
|
|
in his body. There is a large likelihood of internal injuries. He must
|
|
have been jumped upon. To say nothing of three bullet holes clear
|
|
through him. One chance in a thousand is really optimistic. He
|
|
hasn't a chance in ten thousand.'
|
|
|
|
'But he mustn't lose any chance that might be of help to him,' Judge
|
|
Scott exclaimed. 'Never mind expense. Put him under the X-ray-
|
|
anything. Weedon, telegraph at once to San Francisco for Doctor
|
|
Nichols. No reflection on you, doctor, you understand; but he must
|
|
have the advantage of every chance.'
|
|
|
|
The surgeon smiled indulgently. 'Of course I understand. He deserves
|
|
all that can be done for him. He must be nursed as you would nurse a
|
|
human being, a sick child. And don't forget what I told you about
|
|
temperature. I'll be back at ten o'clock again.'
|
|
|
|
White Fang received the nursing. Judge Scott's suggestion of a
|
|
trained nurse was indignantly clamored down by the girls, who
|
|
themselves undertook the task. And White Fang won out on the one
|
|
chance in ten thousand denied him by the surgeon.
|
|
|
|
The latter was not to be censured for his misjudgment. All his
|
|
life he had tended and operated on the soft humans of civilization,
|
|
who lived sheltered lives and had descended out of many sheltered
|
|
generations. Compared with White Fang, they were frail and flabby, and
|
|
clutched life without any strength in their grip. White Fang had
|
|
come straight from the Wild, where the weak perish early and shelter
|
|
is vouchsafed to none. In neither his father nor his mother was
|
|
there any weakness, nor in the generations before them. A constitution
|
|
of iron and the vitality of the Wild were White Fang's inheritance,
|
|
and he clung to life, the whole of him and every part of him, in
|
|
spirit and in flesh, with the tenacity that of old belonged to all
|
|
creatures.
|
|
|
|
Bound down a prisoner, denied even movement by the plaster casts and
|
|
bandages, White Fang lingered out the weeks. He slept long hours and
|
|
dreamed much, and through his mind passed an unending pageant of
|
|
Northland visions. All the ghosts of the past arose and were with him.
|
|
Once again he lived in the lair with Kiche, crept trembling to the
|
|
knees of Gray Beaver to tender his allegiance, ran for his life before
|
|
Lip-lip and all the howling bedlam of the puppy-pack.
|
|
|
|
He ran again through the silence, hunting his living food through
|
|
the months of famine; and again he ran at the head of the team, the
|
|
gut-whips of Mit-sah and Gray Beaver snapping behind, their voices
|
|
crying 'Raa! Raa!' when they came to a narrow passage and the team
|
|
closed together like a fan to go through. He lived again all his
|
|
days with Beauty Smith and the fights he had fought. At such times
|
|
he whimpered and snarled in his sleep and they that looked on said
|
|
that his dreams were bad.
|
|
|
|
But there was one particular nightmare from which he suffered- the
|
|
clanking, clanging monsters of electric cars that were to him colossal
|
|
screaming lynxes. He would lie in a screen of bushes, watching for a
|
|
squirrel to venture far enough out on the ground from its tree-refuge.
|
|
Then, when he sprang out upon it, it would transform itself into an
|
|
electric car, menacing and terrible, towering over him like a
|
|
mountain, screaming and clanging and spitting fire at him. It was
|
|
the same when he challenged the hawk down out of the sky. Down out
|
|
of the blue it would rush, as it dropped upon him changing itself into
|
|
the ubiquitous electric car. Or again, he would be in the pen of
|
|
Beauty Smith. Outside the pen, men would be gathering, and he knew
|
|
that a fight was on. He watched the door for his antagonist to
|
|
enter. The door would open, and thrust in upon him would come the
|
|
awful electric car. A thousand times this occurred, and each time
|
|
the terror it inspired was as vivid and as great as ever.
|
|
|
|
Then came the day when the last bandage and the last plaster cast
|
|
were taken off. It was a gala day. All Sierra Vista was gathered
|
|
around. The master rubbed his ears, and he crooned his love-growl. The
|
|
master's wife called him the 'Blessed Wolf,' which name was taken up
|
|
with acclaim and all the women called him the Blessed Wolf.
|
|
|
|
He tried to rise to his feet, and after several attempts fell down
|
|
from weakness. He had lain so long that his muscles had gone out of
|
|
them. He felt a little shame because of his weakness, as though,
|
|
forsooth, he was failing the gods in the service he owed them. Because
|
|
of this he made heroic efforts to arise, and at last he stood on his
|
|
four legs, tottering and swaying back and forth.
|
|
|
|
'The Blessed Wolf!' chorused the women.
|
|
|
|
Judge Scott surveyed them triumphantly.
|
|
|
|
'Out of your own mouths be it,' he said. 'Just as I contended
|
|
right along. No mere dog could have done what he did. He's a wolf.'
|
|
|
|
'A Blessed Wolf,' amended the Judge's wife.
|
|
|
|
'Yes, Blessed Wolf,' agreed the Judge. 'And henceforth that shall be
|
|
my name for him.'
|
|
|
|
'He'll have to learn to walk again,' said the surgeon; 'so he
|
|
might as well start in right now. It won't hurt him. Take him
|
|
outside.'
|
|
|
|
And outside he went, like a king, with all Sierra Vista about him
|
|
and tending on him. He was very weak, and when he reached the lawn
|
|
he lay down and rested for a while.
|
|
|
|
Then the procession started on, little spurts of strength coming
|
|
into White Fang's muscles as he used them and the blood began to surge
|
|
through them. The stables were reached, and there in the doorway lay
|
|
Collie, a half-dozen pudgy puppies playing about her in the sun.
|
|
|
|
White Fang looked on with a wondering eye.
|
|
|
|
Collie snarled warningly at him, and he was careful to keep his
|
|
distance. The master with his toe helped one sprawling puppy toward
|
|
him. He bristled suspiciously, but the master warned him that all
|
|
was well. Collie, clasped in the arms of one of the women, watched him
|
|
jealously and with a snarl warned him that all was not well.
|
|
|
|
The puppy sprawled in front of him. He cocked his ears and watched
|
|
it curiously. Then their noses touched, and he felt the warm little
|
|
tongue of the puppy on his jowl. White Fang's tongue went out, he knew
|
|
not why, and he licked the puppy's face.
|
|
|
|
Hand-clapping and pleased cries from the gods greeted the
|
|
performance. He was surprised, and looked at them in a puzzled way.
|
|
Then his weakness asserted itself, and he lay down, his ears cocked,
|
|
his head on one side, as he watched the puppy. The other puppies
|
|
came sprawling toward him, to Collie's great disgust; and he gravely
|
|
permitted them to clamber and tumble over him. At first, amid the
|
|
applause of the gods, he betrayed a trifle of his old
|
|
self-consciousness and awkwardness. This passed away as the puppies'
|
|
antics and mauling continued, and he lay with half-shut, patient eyes,
|
|
drowsing in the sun.
|
|
|
|
THE END
|
|
.
|